Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n acknowledge_v faith_n true_a 3,733 5 4.5591 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13160 A challenge concerning the Romish Church, her doctrine & practises, published first against Rob. Parsons, and now againe reuiewed, enlarged, and fortified, and directed to him, to Frier Garnet, to the archpriest Blackevvell and all their adhærents, by Matth. Sutcliffe. Thereunto also is annexed an answere vnto certeine vaine, and friuolous exceptions, taken to his former challenge, and to a certeine worthlesse pamphlet lately set out by some poore disciple of Antichrist, and entituled, A detection of diuers notable vntrueths, contradictions, corruptions, and falsifications gathered out of M. Sutcliffes new challenge, &c. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629.; Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. Briefe replie to a certaine odious and slanderous libel. 1602 (1602) STC 23454; ESTC S117867 337,059 440

There are 50 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

by_o solemn_a decretal_n although_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v the_o vanity_n of_o they_o appear_v partly_o in_o this_o discourse_n but_o far_o more_o at_o large_a hereafter_o final_o the_o same_o admit_v most_o lie_a legend_n and_o now_o and_o then_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o the_o church_n as_o for_o example_n the_o legend_n of_o catherine_n clement_n gregory_n call_v also_o thaumaturgus_n peter_n martyr_v a_o dominican_n s._n catharine_n of_o sienna_n s._n christopher_n and_o diverse_a other_o in_o the_o legend_n of_o s._n catherine_n catharinae_n catherine_n in_o breviaer_n ro._n in_o fest●_n catharinae_n they_o write_v that_o she_o be_v a_o maiden_n of_o alexandria_n and_o so_o well_o learned_a that_o at_o the_o age_n of_o eighteen_o year_n she_o pass_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o in_o dispute_n overcome_v fifty_o philosopher_n and_o that_o also_o she_o convert_v faustina_n the_o empress_n and_o porphyrius_n a_o captain_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o faith_n they_o say_v also_o that_o she_o break_v the_o torment_a wheel_n with_o her_o prayer_n &_o that_o after_o her_o death_n her_o body_n be_v bury_v in_o mount_n sinah_n by_o angel_n in_o the_o feast_n of_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o romish_a breviary_n we_o read_v that_o clement_n peter_n successor_n be_v by_o trajan_n send_v into_o the_o wilderness_n of_o be_v of_o let_v parson_n tell_v we_o where_o this_o be_v cersona_fw-la and_o that_o there_o he_o see_v a_o lamb_n make_v a_o well_o to_o sally_v out_o of_o the_o top_n of_o the_o mountain_n and_o that_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o sea_n with_o a_o millstone_n about_o his_o neck_n the_o sea_n flee_v three_o mile_n from_o the_o shore_n and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n a_o little_a chapel_n be_v find_v in_o the_o sea_n where_o his_o body_n be_v bestow_v on_o the_o festival_n day_n of_o gregory_n of_o neocesaria_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n rom._n rome_n in_o breviar_n rom._n appoint_v his_o legend_n to_o be_v read_v where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o cause_v the_o river_n of_o lycus_n to_o keep_v within_o the_o channel_n by_o plant_v his_o staff_n on_o the_o bank_n and_o that_o his_o staff_n grow_v present_o into_o a_o great_a tree_n in_o the_o ritual_a book_n of_o sarum_n we_o read_v that_o gregory_n the_o first_o deliver_v traian_n soul_n out_o of_o hell_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a why_o be_v it_o now_o cross_v out_o of_o the_o new_a book_n if_o false_a how_o hapen_v it_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o long_o beléeve_v that_o tale_n mart._n tale_n i'n_n breviar_a rom._n in_o fest_n petr._n mart._n peter_n martyr_n one_o of_o dominickes_n order_n as_o they_o write_v &_o i_o think_v believe_v do_v keep_v his_o virginity_n both_o in_o body_n and_o mind_n and_o in_o that_o sort_n that_o he_o never_o feel_v himself_o defile_v with_o any_o mortal_a sin_n they_o tell_v we_o also_o that_o he_o do_v fast_o so_o long_o that_o he_o can_v scarce_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o eat_v they_o tell_v we_o further_o many_o wonder_n of_o saint_n nicolas_n valerian_n and_o tiburtius_n lucia_n christopher_n and_o other_o saint_n in_o the_o italic_fw-mi the_o historia_fw-la lou●bard_n deal_v volto_n santo_n italic_fw-mi legend_n of_o jeame_n of_o the_o coal-pit_n for_o else_o i_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o english_a jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragne_n we_o read_v that_o a_o certain_a picture_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v lift_v up_o his_o foot_n and_o cast_v off_o his_o slipper_n to_o a_o certain_a pilgrim_n that_o devout_o stand_v before_o it_o and_o will_v have_v offer_v somewhat_o have_v nothing_o to_o offer_v of_o saint_n catherine_n of_o sienna_n they_o say_v that_o she_o be_v betroth_v to_o our_o saviour_n christ_n all_o which_o point_n be_v very_o incredible_a and_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o authentical_a writing_n if_o then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n publish_v and_o teach_v these_o fable_n and_o lie_v then_o be_v she_o no_o mistress_n of_o truth_n but_o of_o lie_n if_o robert_n parson_n will_v say_v they_o be_v no_o lie_n i_o will_v pray_v he_o to_o declare_v we_o the_o truth_n out_o of_o authentical_a history_n argument_n 13_o the_o faith_n of_o god_n true_a church_n can_v be_v build_v upon_o any_o uncertainty_n or_o untruth_n for_o faith_n be_v a_o argument_n certain_a or_o a_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v est_fw-la fides_fw-la say_v the_o 11._o the_o hebr._n 11._o apostle_n sperandarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la substantia_fw-la argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la and_o it_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v truth_n and_o on_o a_o rock_n that_o be_v unmovable_a neither_o need_n we_o long_o profess_v for_o this_o point_n for_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a nihil_fw-la say_v thomas_n aquinas_n cadere_fw-la potest_fw-la sub_fw-la fide_fw-la nisi_fw-la inquantum_fw-la stat_fw-la sub_fw-la veritate_fw-la prima_fw-la sub_fw-la qua_fw-la nullum_fw-la falsum_fw-la stare_v potest_fw-la and_o afterward_o he_o say_v quod_fw-la fidei_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la aliquod_fw-la falsum_fw-la if_o then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ground_v on_o falsehood_n then_o be_v it_o no_o true_a faith_n and_o if_o that_o church_n faith_n be_v no_o faith_n then_o be_v not_o that_o church_n the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v build_v upon_o diverse_a false_a position_n it_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v for_o first_o the_o same_o believe_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v either_o descend_v from_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o namely_o such_o as_o concern_v the_o canon_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n fast_n praiex_v for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o such_o like_o second_o it_o believe_v all_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n to_o be_v true_a and_o infallible_a as_o for_o example_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o depose_v king_n to_o give_v power_n to_o cutthroat_n to_o kill_v king_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o uncle_n to_o marry_v his_o niece_n with_o the_o brother_n to_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n and_o such_o like_a three_o that_o church_n beléeve_v what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o breviary_n and_o missale_n as_o for_o example_n the_o story_n or_o rather_o legend_n of_o saint_n christopher_n saint_n george_n saint_n catherine_n and_o such_o like_a final_o the_o same_o must_v believe_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n shall_v determine_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la but_o among_o such_o tradition_n determination_n and_o legend_n there_o be_v diverse_a both_o false_a and_o ridiculous_a fable_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v determine_v and_o may_v also_o determine_v false_o and_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o this_o be_v show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n at_o large_a rom._n large_a lib._n 4._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n and_o can_v be_v deny_v unless_o robert_n parson_n can_v prove_v unto_o we_o that_o all_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n and_o all_o the_o tradition_n of_o that_o church_n and_o all_o legend_n be_v true_a which_o to_o he_o will_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o some_o difficulty_n argument_n 14_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v bound_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n habet_fw-la urbes_fw-la legis_fw-la prophetarum_fw-la &_o evangelii_fw-la say_v saint_n 1._o saint_n in_o mich._n lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o hierome_n and_o again_o non_fw-la est_fw-la egressa_fw-la de_fw-fr finibus_fw-la suis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n sanctis_fw-la he_o 7._o he_o ibidem_fw-la c._n 7._o say_v also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n to_o fly_v to_o man_n commandment_n and_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisee_n s._n 18._o s._n lib._n 19_o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 18._o augustine_n also_o concure_v with_o he_o and_o say_v that_o the_o city_n of_o god_n believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v call_v canonical_a but_o of_o other_o report_n he_o say_v she_o doubt_v but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o be_v bound_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o will_v she_o acknowledge_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o also_o from_o scripture_n fly_v to_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o be_v much_o sour_v with_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharisées_fw-fr and_o mixture_n of_o popish_a and_o jewish_a ceremony_n devise_v and_o establish_v by_o man_n final_o the_o same_o do_v rather_o or_o at_o the_o least_o as_o soon_o believe_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o letter_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o in_o the_o pope_n stapleton_n place_v the_o chief_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n
of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o give_v latriam_fw-la or_o sovereign_a worship_n not_o to_o god_n only_o but_o also_o to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o the_o image_n also_o of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n and_o of_o the_o cross_n of_o their_o agnus_n dei_fw-la they_o 7._o they_o caerem_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 7._o say_v peccatum_fw-la frangit_fw-la ut_fw-la christi_fw-la sanguis_fw-la &_o angit_fw-la and_o when_o they_o consecrate_v a_o cross_n they_o pray_v that_o as_o the_o world_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n so_o those_o that_o offer_v to_o the_o new_a make_v cross_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o same_o may_v be_v acquit_v from_o all_o sin_n argument_n 56_o the_o true_a church_n never_o use_v the_o mediation_n of_o other_o then_o of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n the_o 2._o the_o 1._o tim._n 2._o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v get_v to_o itself_o a_o pack_n of_o mediator_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o entitle_v the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mediatrix_fw-la betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n 3._o man_n hist_o p._n 3._o tit._n 23._o c._n 3._o antoninus_n write_v that_o on_o a_o certain_a time_n christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n rise_v up_o in_o fury_n purpose_v to_o destroy_v all_o sinner_n from_o the_o earth_n but_o that_o he_o be_v entreat_v by_o his_o mother_n to_o stay_v until_o such_o time_n as_o she_o have_v send_v forth_o dominicke_n and_o francis_n to_o preach_v in_o the_o world_n neither_o can_v that_o trite_a and_o absurd_a distinction_n of_o some_o sophister_n excuse_v the_o papist_n that_o they_o accknowledge_v one_o only_a mediator_n of_o redemtion_n and_o use_v to_o pray_v to_o saint_n as_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n for_o first_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n allow_v no_o mediator_n but_o such_o as_o be_v mediator_n of_o redemption_n and_o not_o only_o of_o intercession_n and_o therefore_o that_o title_n of_o mediator_n the_o scripture_n give_v only_o to_o our_o saviour_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 2._o and_o hebr._n 9_o &_o 12._o where_o our_o saviour_n be_v call_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a testamnet_n and_o saint_n 8._o saint_n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la c._n 8._o augustine_n where_o he_o dissallow_v the_o title_n of_o mediator_n in_o parmenian_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o pastor_n may_v intercede_v and_o pray_v for_o his_o flock_n but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v call_v a_o mediator_n and_o his_o ibidem_fw-la his_o ibidem_fw-la reason_n be_v quia_fw-la unus_fw-la verusque_fw-la mediator_n est_fw-la which_o exclude_v all_o man_n whether_o alive_a or_o dead_a from_o this_o title_n of_o mediator_n second_o the_o papist_n in_o their_o blasphemous_a canon_n do_v make_v priest_n mediator_n not_o only_o of_o intercession_n but_o also_o of_o redemtion_n where_o they_o say_v qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la offerunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la landis_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la suisque_fw-la omnibus_fw-la pro_fw-la redemptione_n animarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la three_o they_o so_o pray_v to_o angel_n and_o saint_n as_o if_o we_o can_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n but_o by_o they_o but_o our_o saviour_n do_v immediate_o call_v man_n to_o himself_o and_o teach_v we_o to_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n in_o his_o name_n and_o saint_n 1._o saint_n in_o rom._n 1._o ambrose_n say_v that_o to_o obtain_v god_n favour_n we_o need_v no_o spokesman_n but_o a_o devout_a mind_n chrysostome_n likewise_o homines_fw-la say_v 4._o say_v de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la homil_n 4._o he_o utuntur_fw-la atriensibus_fw-la in_fw-la deo_fw-la nihil_fw-la tale_n est_fw-la sine_fw-la mediatore_fw-la exorabilis_fw-la est_fw-la and_o in_o another_o place_n enang_fw-la place_n de_fw-fr profectu_fw-la enang_fw-la nihil_fw-la tibi_fw-la patronis_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la tam_fw-la facilè_fw-la deus_fw-la audit_n si_fw-la alij_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la orent_fw-la qùam_fw-la si_fw-la ipsi_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la oremus_fw-la etsi_fw-la pleni_fw-la simus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la malis_fw-la four_o they_o so_o pray_v to_o angel_n and_o saint_n as_o they_o give_v man_n to_o understand_v that_o they_o be_v present_a in_o all_o place_n for_o to_o saint_n francis_n saint_n dominicke_n and_o other_o saint_n they_o pray_v in_o italy_n spain_n france_n and_o other_o country_n they_o also_o signify_v that_o they_o understand_v their_o heart_n and_o devotion_n but_o this_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n only_o to_o be_v in_o all_o place_n and_o to_o search_v man_n heart_n and_o the_o same_o belong_v to_o no_o creature_n unless_o we_o will_v ascribe_v divinity_n unto_o they_o fift_o they_o in_o their_o litany_n to_o saint_n and_o angel_n have_v such_o form_n of_o prayer_n as_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o time_n use_v in_o the_o mass_n they_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o by_o the_o merit_n and_o prayer_n of_o saint_n in_o all_o thing_n they_o may_v be_v protect_v by_o god_n help_n at_o other_o time_n they_o pray_v to_o saint_n not_o only_o to_o pray_v for_o they_o but_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o help_v they_o final_o they_o call_v upon_o such_o person_n as_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v saint_n as_o for_o example_n traitor_n execute_v for_o their_o offence_n and_o friar_n and_o monk_n odious_a for_o their_o superstition_n in_o the_o first_o rank_n come_v thomas_n becket_n and_o campion_n and_o his_o fellow_n in_o the_o second_o francis_n dominic_n clare_n rock_n catharine_n of_o sienna_n and_o such_o like_a unless_o therefore_o robert_n parson_n and_o his_o consorte_n can_v prove_v these_o form_n of_o intercession_n to_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o great_a hazard_n but_o he_o will_v prove_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n argument_n 57_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o never_o read_v nor_o hear_v that_o christian_n use_v to_o scourge_v themselves_o before_o crucifix_n and_o other_o image_n public_o or_o in_o their_o chamber_n of_o meditation_n private_o or_o that_o they_o cry_v out_o before_o their_o image_n and_o crucifix_n but_o we_o read_v that_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n cut_v themselves_o so_o that_o the_o blood_n follow_v and_o that_o they_o cry_v main_o upon_o baal_n we_o read_v also_o that_o the_o priest_n of_o cybele_n in_o honour_n of_o their_o goddess_n be_v wont_a to_o cut_v themselves_o they_o say_v also_o that_o in_o the_o india_n there_o be_v certain_a priest_n that_o lash_v themselves_o before_o their_o idol_n be_v not_o then_o the_o papi_v that_o scourge_n themselves_o before_o their_o image_n and_o in_o their_o chamber_n of_o meditation_n like_a to_o baal_n priest_n and_o ethnike_n then_o to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n argument_n 58_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n sinner_n do_v penance_n in_o their_o own_o person_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o scourge_v themselves_o and_o to_o do_v other_o office_n of_o penance_n by_o deputy_n argument_n 59_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n give_v forth_o no_o indulgence_n nor_o iubely_v nor_o do_v take_v on_o they_o to_o dispense_v christ_n and_o the_o saint_n merit_n by_o public_a charter_n nor_o give_v pardon_n of_o hundred_o of_o day_n or_o year_n be_v it_o not_o then_o the_o false_a church_n that_o take_v this_o power_n unto_o she_o argument_n 60_o the_o true_a church_n be_v a_o society_n of_o faithful_a people_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n for_o as_o the_o 4._o the_o ephes_n 4._o apostle_n say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n have_v give_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o mynistery_n &_o for_o the_o aedification_n of_o his_o body_n until_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n 9_o man_n lib._n 4._o epist_n 9_o cyprian_n say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o people_n unite_v to_o their_o bishop_n and_o a_o flock_n adhere_v to_o their_o pastor_n est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la say_v he_o plebs_fw-la episcopo_fw-la adunata_fw-la &_o pastori_fw-la svo_fw-la grex_fw-la adhaerens_fw-la so_o likewise_o say_v luciferianos_fw-la say_v in_o dial_n advers_a luciferianos_fw-la hierome_n quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la and_o this_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o reason_n that_o there_o ordinary_o can_v be_v no_o church_n where_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n to_o gather_v a_o church_n nor_o a_o family_n of_o god_n child_n where_o there_o be_v no_o pastoral_a father_n to_o beget_v son_n to_o god_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v long_o want_v true_a bishop_n &_o priest_n and_o
grant_v that_o any_o be_v save_v jumble_v catholic_a and_o roman_a together_o as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o jebusite_n of_o bordeaux_n by_o canisius_n catechism_n translate_v into_o spanish_a by_o hierome_n campos_n bristowe_v 12._o motive_n in_o the_o margin_n the_o cardinal_n of_o cusa_n epist_n 5._o ad_fw-la bohemos_n cochlaeus_fw-la hist_o hussit_fw-la lib._n 11._o argument_n 15_o the_o papist_n also_o to_o fit_v their_o new_a fantasy_n have_v coin_v a_o new_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o church_n de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n define_v the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n conjoin_v in_o one_o profession_n of_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o sacrament_n under_o the_o government_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o definition_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v show_v in_o any_o authentical_a writer_n nor_o prove_v by_o any_o good_a argument_n for_o neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n outward_o and_o to_o communicate_v in_o sacrament_n and_o to_o live_v in_o subjection_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v show_v that_o all_o christian_n have_v ever_o live_v in_o subjection_n of_o romish_a bishop_n not_o that_o for_o that_o most_o wicked_a person_n and_o atheist_n and_o heretic_n may_v make_v a_o external_a profession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n as_o do_v judas_n and_o live_v in_o outward_a subjection_n to_o their_o pastor_n which_o notwithstanding_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n not_o this_o for_o the_o eastern_a and_o african_a church_n in_o time_n past_o be_v never_o govern_v by_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la if_o robert_n parson_n think_v otherwise_o let_v he_o produce_v three_o or_o four_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n whereto_o these_o church_n yield_v obedience_n argument_n 16_o the_o ancient_a father_n beléeve_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o a_o multitude_n of_o true_a beléever_n the_o first_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n and_o so_o prove_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o father_n account_v no_o licentious_a liver_n true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n non_fw-la ideo_fw-la putandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la mali_fw-la say_v s._n ult._n s._n lib._n 2._o contr_n lit_fw-fr petil_o c._n ult._n augustine_n esse_fw-la in_o christi_fw-la corpore_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quia_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la eius_fw-la corporaliter_fw-la participes_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o second_o be_v prove_v for_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o life_n of_o christians_n ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la domus_fw-la dei_fw-la say_v 51._o say_v in_o psal_n 51._o hilary_n &_o omnes_fw-la evangelicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la sectatores_fw-la likewise_o sacrament_n likewise_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr sacrament_n ambrose_n say_v that_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o be_v require_v in_o a_o christian_a be_v faith_n and_o both_o these_o point_n i_o have_v at_o large_a prove_v against_o 7._o against_o lib._n the_o eccles_n part_n vat_fw-la &_o sedec_fw-la 6._o &_o 7._o bellarmine_n but_o the_o papist_n if_o any_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o 2._o to_o lib._n the_o eccles_n mi●it_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n do_v hold_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o part_n and_o true_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n albeit_o he_o have_v neither_o faith_n nor_o charity_n nor_o any_o inward_a virtue_n so_o that_o by_o his_o confession_n the_o romish_a church_n may_v consist_v of_o infidel_n atheist_n sodomite_n and_o abominable_a person_n argument_n 17_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v wont_a to_o reverence_v the_o apostle_n canon_n but_o the_o late_a romish_a church_n do_v not_o much_o regard_v they_o as_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o the_o 5.9_o and_o 31._o canon_n which_o be_v not_o now_o observe_v ex_fw-la 84._o apostolicis_fw-la canonibus_fw-la say_v 105._o say_v lib._n 5._o de_fw-la sacror_fw-la hom_n continent_n c._n 105._o michael_n medina_n quos_fw-la clemens_n romanus_n pontifex_fw-la &_o eorundem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipulus_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la coegit_fw-la vix_fw-la sex_n aut_fw-la octo_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la nunc_fw-la obseruat_fw-la likewise_o martin_n perez_n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n de_fw-fr autorit_fw-fr can_v apost_n say_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n canon_n which_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o time_n be_v not_o full_o observe_v argument_n 18_o the_o ancient_a church_n never_o use_v to_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o angel_n saint_n and_o to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n neither_o be_v christian_n enjoin_v in_o time_n past_a to_o say_v confiteor_fw-la deo_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la beatae_fw-la mariae_fw-la semper_fw-la virgini_fw-la beato_fw-la michaeli_n archangelo_fw-la beato_fw-la joanni_fw-la baptistae_fw-la sanctis_fw-la apostolis_fw-la petro_n &_o paulo_n omnibúsque_fw-la sanctis_fw-la as_o the_o papist_n say_v in_o every_o mass_n nay_o in_o ancient_a chrysostomi_n ancient_a in_o missa_fw-la jacobi_n marci_n basilij_fw-la chrysostomi_n missal_n this_o form_n be_v not_o find_v argument_n 19_o neither_o do_v the_o priest_n clerk_n in_o ancient_a time_n give_v absolution_n to_o the_o priest_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o missale_n of_o rome_n nor_o say_v misereatur_fw-la tui_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o dimissis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la peccatis_fw-la tuis_fw-la perducat_fw-la te_fw-la ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la for_o that_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o give_v the_o key_n to_o boy_n and_o prefer_v the_o scholar_n before_o the_o master_n argument_n 20_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n also_o set_v out_o by_o fidei_fw-la by_o bulla_n pij_fw-la 4._o super_fw-la forma_fw-la profess_v fidei_fw-la pius_n the_o four_o wherein_o all_o that_o take_v degree_n in_o school_n or_o take_v charge_n of_o soul_n profess_v that_o they_o believe_v and_o admit_v ecclesiastical_a tradition_n and_o constitution_n and_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o romish_a sense_n the_o seven_o sacrament_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n concern_v original_a sin_n justice_n of_o work_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n transubstantiation_n and_o other_o point_n there_o establish_v be_v new_a and_o no_o where_o to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n argument_n 21_o in_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o ancient_a father_n never_o use_v to_o leave_v out_o that_o commandment_n that_o concern_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n like_v to_o god_n and_o the_o worship_v of_o they_o but_o the_o romish_a church_n know_v itself_o guilty_a of_o the_o breach_n of_o this_o commandment_n in_o their_o little_a catechism_n put_v before_o the_o office_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o diverse_a other_o campos_fw-la other_o catechism_n de_fw-fr hieronymode_fw-fr campos_fw-la book_n do_v leave_v the_o same_o quite_o out_o argument_n 22_o in_o ancient_a time_n christian_n beléeve_v that_o all_o be_v sin_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o so_o they_o collect_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n that_o pronounce_v all_o accurse_a 3_o accurse_a deut._n 27._o &_o galat._n 3_o that_o do_v not_o abide_v in_o all_o thing_n 5._o thing_n 1._o john_n 5._o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o and_o saint_n john_n say_v express_o that_o all_o unrighteousness_n be_v sin_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o then_o be_v the_o law_n of_o god_n a_o most_o imperfect_a and_o uncertain_a rule_n but_o the_o 46._o the_o consur_n colon_n f._n 46._o papist_n of_o late_a time_n affirm_v that_o all_o that_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n be_v not_o sin_n and_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o final_o that_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n not_o to_o love_n god_n withal_o our_o hart_n and_o all_o our_o soul_n argument_n 23_o ancient_a christian_n beléeve_v that_o concupiscence_n even_o in_o the_o regenerate_a be_v sin_n for_o that_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n that_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v the_o apostle_n also_o do_v call_v concupiscence_n in_o himself_o be_v now_o regenerate_v sin_n and_o necessary_o it_o must_v be_v so_o see_v we_o be_v by_o the_o 6._o the_o deut._n 6._o law_n of_o god_n bind_v to_o love_n god_n withal_o our_o hart_n all_o our_o soul_n all_o our_o strength_n saint_n hierome_n 1_o hierome_n in_o amos_n 1_o say_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o think_v thing_n that_o be_v evil_a and_o saint_n 27._o saint_n lib._n 2._o contr_n faust_n manich._n c._n 27._o augustine_n teach_v we_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v desire_v or_o covet_v against_o the_o law_n be_v sin_n but_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n decré_v that_o concupiscence_n in_o the_o regenerate_a be_v no_o sin_n argument_n 24_o the_o apostle_n james_n teach_v that_o we_o do_v all_o of_o we_o sin_n and_o that_o in_o diverse_a thing_n and_o saint_n john_n say_v that_o he_o
no_o part_n of_o my_o meaning_n but_o i_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v long_o want_v true_a bishope_n and_o teacher_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n have_v no_o bishop_n nor_o priest_n at_o all_o but_o in_o name_n and_o that_o i_o prove_v for_o that_o they_o want_v true_a priesthood_n and_o true_a ordination_n and_o be_v ordain_v and_o send_v by_o antichrist_n by_o heretic_n and_o simoniacal_a person_n and_o such_o as_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o ordain_v or_o send_v forth_o bishop_n and_o preeste_n he_o answer_v final_o that_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o carp_v at_o the_o romish_a clergy_n for_o their_o bad_a life_n and_o lack_v of_o learning_n see_v pag._n 96._o our_o church_n as_o he_o say_v admit_v most_o base_a lewd_a &_o unlearned_a artisan_n &_o this_o he_o indevour_v to_o prove_v by_o m._n parries_n word_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o vrsinus_n his_o catechism_n but_o he_o lie_v like_o a_o lewd_a and_o base_a fellow_n if_o he_o suppose_v that_o such_o be_v admit_v by_o our_o church_n they_o do_v thrust_v in_o i_o confess_v by_o the_o abuse_v of_o soon_o on_o or_o more_o but_o the_o church_n allow_v they_o not_o nay_o there_o be_v canon_n make_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v minister_n but_o bachilar_n of_o art_n or_o man_n otherwise_o well_o qualify_v and_o know_v to_o be_v able_a to_o teach_v if_o any_o do_v otherwise_o by_o indirect_a mean_n come_v into_o the_o ministry_n which_o abuse_v master_n parry_n note_v yet_o i_o hope_v they_o be_v not_o so_o rude_a or_o so_o lewd_a as_o mass_n priest_n which_o be_v the_o scum_n of_o all_o vileny_n for_o the_o most_o part_n as_o those_o that_o travel_n spain_n and_o italy_n know_v by_o practice_n and_o our_o rinegat_n english_a mass_n preestes_n by_o their_o lewdness_n and_o insufficiency_n plain_o prove_v have_v answer_v according_a to_o his_o best_a skill_n and_o break_v as_o he_o think_v all_o our_o bond_n like_o dalilaes_n cord_n though_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n say_v that_o a_o certain_a dalila_n have_v strong_a hold_n of_o he_o he_o go_v about_o to_o retort_v this_o argument_n upon_o we_o and_o say_v if_o the_o true_a church_n have_v always_o true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag_n 100_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n as_o want_v true_a preeste_n and_o bishop_n and_o with_o this_o argument_n he_o hope_v to_o give_v we_o such_o a_o dry_a shave_n as_o he_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o will_v mar_v the_o whole_a beauty_n thereof_o but_o he_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v but_o a_o simple_a barber_n and_o a_o worse_a dry_a shaver_n for_o now_o he_o can_v show_v but_o that_o we_o have_v true_a bishop_n have_v both_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o our_o bishop_n execute_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n loyal_o and_o orderly_o before_o this_o reformation_n also_o our_o bishop_n have_v all_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n think_v necessary_a in_o the_o outward_a call_n of_o bishop_n beside_o that_o there_o fail_v not_o among_o our_o bishop_n and_o priest_n at_o all_o time_n diverse_a man_n which_o detest_v the_o abomination_n of_o the_o romanistes_n as_o robert_n gro_v bishop_n of_o lincoln_n richard_n vllerston_n that_o live_v about_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n john_n wicleffe_n and_o diverse_a other_o but_o say_v he_o who_o lay_v hand_n on_o bishop_n parker_n he_o seem_v also_o to_o make_v the_o like_a question_n of_o luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la i_o answer_v that_o bishop_n coverdale_n and_o skory_n and_o other_o which_o be_v bishop_n in_o king_n edward_n time_n lay_v hand_n upon_o bishop_n parker_n i_o confess_v also_o that_o bishop_n cranmer_n luther_n and_o zuinglius_fw-la have_v a_o external_a call_n though_o corrupt_a &_o in_o a_o corrupt_a state_n yet_o such_o as_o owlygalsse_n dare_v not_o deny_v to_o be_v sufficient_a and_o beside_o that_o external_a call_n it_o please_v god_n to_o revele_v to_o they_o his_o will_n extraordinary_o and_o to_o call_v they_o out_o of_o babylon_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o of_o all_o man_n have_v least_o reason_n to_o challenge_v they_o for_o their_o call_n beside_o that_o he_o can_v conclude_v because_o that_o external_a calling_n be_v then_o think_v sufficient_a that_o now_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v a_o calling_n sufficient_a for_o albeit_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o worship_v baal_n have_v a_o external_a call_n which_o be_v not_o disable_v when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o idolatrous_a service_n do_v to_o baal_n nor_o that_o preesthood_n lawful_a the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o mass_n priest_n they_o shall_v have_v serve_v god_n aright_o yet_o when_o they_o serve_v at_o their_o mass_a altar_n they_o worship_v strange_a god_n but_o when_o they_o leave_v their_o idolatry_n than_o their_o call_n take_v effect_v they_o do_v that_o for_o which_o they_o be_v principal_o call_v furthermore_o he_o can_v say_v because_o now_o all_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n be_v abandon_v we_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o the_o papist_n that_o retain_v still_o their_o superstition_n be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o true_a church_n be_v try_v by_o true_a faith_n true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n &_o not_o by_o external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o succession_n without_o god_n true_a worship_n or_o the_o true_a faith_n owlyglasse_n will_v also_o glad_o have_v i_o to_o set_v down_o the_o name_n of_o those_o bishop_n that_o govern_v our_o church_n ever_o since_o christ_n as_o if_o all_o bishop_n that_o maintain_v the_o apostle_n créede_v and_o catholic_a faith_n be_v not_o our_o bishop_n if_o they_o digress_v from_o the_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o new_a rank_n of_o bishop_n but_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v true_a bishop_n that_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n he_o talk_v also_o of_o my_o be_v at_o cales_n but_o it_o be_v more_o honesty_n for_o i_o to_o go_v in_o the_o service_n of_o my_o prince_n and_o country_n against_o foreign_a enemy_n then_o for_o he_o with_o foreign_a enemy_n like_o a_o disloyal_a traitor_n to_o fight_v against_o his_o prince_n and_o country_n and_o like_o a_o base_a slave_n to_o serve_v the_o pope_n turn_n and_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o justify_v my_o argument_n against_o the_o popish_a préesthood_n it_o rest_v now_o that_o i_o answer_v his_o frivolous_a objection_n concern_v some_o point_n which_o he_o suppose_v to_o contain_v matter_n of_o contradiction_n which_o he_o vaunt_v that_o he_o will_v handle_v to_o the_o little_a commendation_n of_o my_o learning_n as_o he_o say_v but_o if_o he_o will_v indeed_o have_v disgrace_v i_o he_o shall_v have_v take_v in_o hand_n the_o answer_n of_o some_o latin_a treatise_n which_o i_o have_v publish_v against_o bellar._n for_o therein_o he_o may_v have_v show_v learning_n whereas_o this_o discourse_n concern_v falsification_n and_o untruth_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o little_a fardel_n of_o foolery_n and_o a_o vain_a babble_n for_o his_o client_n to_o sport_n themselves_o with_o all_o well_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o know_v his_o worship_n pleasure_n concern_v these_o suppose_a contradiction_n first_o he_o charge_v i_o with_o say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v not_o certain_o establish_v nor_o receive_v before_o the_o late_a council_n of_o trent_n and_o this_o he_o suppose_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o which_o i_o affirm_v in_o another_o place_n viz._n that_o the_o just_a number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenius_n the_o four_o and_o afterward_o confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o the_o poor_a idiot_n do_v rather_o bewray_v his_o own_o ignorance_n that_o know_v not_o how_o this_o doctrine_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n creep_v into_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o great_a dulness_n that_o can_v not_o distinguish_v betwixt_o instruction_n and_o canon_n talk_v or_o mention_v matter_n and_o confirm_v they_o by_o solemn_a act_n and_o decree_n to_o reform_v his_o error_n therefore_o i_o must_v let_v he_o understand_v that_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n do_v not_o by_o any_o solemn_a canon_n establish_v the_o just_a number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n but_o certain_a idle_a friar_n or_o other_o in_o that_o conventicle_n or_o at_o the_o least_o under_o the_o credit_n thereof_o deliver_v this_o doctrine_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n to_o the_o armenian_n furthermore_o not_o all_o church_n but_o the_o armenian_n have_v this_o doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o they_o i_o speak_v therefore_o wary_o where_o i_o say_v that_o albeit_o that_o doctrine_n be_v talk_v of_o perhaps_o and_o deliver_v to_o the_o armenian_n yet_o it_o be_v first_o confirm_v by_o solemn_a
have_v do_v before_o they_o and_o yet_o affirm_v also_o that_o pope_n syricius_n be_v seduce_v by_o satan_n publish_v wicked_a doctrine_n &_o teach_v the_o flat_a doctrine_n of_o the_o devil_n &_o that_o pope_n sozimus_n bring_v in_o superstition_n and_o falsify_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n so_o to_o maintain_v the_o usurp_a primacy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o if_o m._n bell_n proposition_n may_v not_o well_o stand_v together_o for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v good_a and_o godly_a man_n and_o teach_v true_a doctrine_n until_o s._n augustine_n time_n but_o speak_v indefinite_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n without_o add_v all_o which_o manner_n of_o speech_n in_o materia_fw-la contingenti_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v absolute_o and_o universal_o but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o so_o no_o doubt_n saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n understand_v it_o know_v that_o marcelline_n sacrifice_v to_o idol_n and_o that_o liberius_n be_v a_o arrian_n and_o we_o may_v say_v also_o that_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n be_v good_a man_n although_o judas_n be_v a_o traitor_n and_o lantern_n bearer_n to_o the_o jew_n as_o some_o popish_a writer_n say_v that_o betray_v christ_n and_o much_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o this_o detectour_n of_o falsification_n and_o detractor_n from_o honest_a man_n and_o a_o very_a lanterne_a of_o antichrist_n and_o a_o traitor_n to_o his_o country_n let_v he_o therefore_o beware_v he_o be_v not_o take_v pass_v through_o back_n door_n like_o the_o idolatrous_a priest_n of_o bel_n and_o so_o for_o his_o gordian_a knot_n be_v take_v tie_v in_o a_o tyburn_n knot_n 10_o i_o need_v not_o say_v much_o of_o our_o adversary_n form_n of_o writing_n or_o frame_v of_o sentence_n for_o it_o appear_v every_o where_o that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v the_o difference_n of_o pneuma_fw-la and_o periodus_fw-la nor_o can_v distinguish_v betwixt_o colon_n and_o periode_n commae_n and_o colon_n his_o whole_a discouse_n be_v like_a to_o nothing_o that_o i_o can_v imagine_v then_o to_o the_o way_n between_o chard_n and_o honiton_n in_o the_o west_n country_n that_o be_v rude_a and_o rugged_a up_o hill_n and_o down_o hill_n and_o very_o unequal_a but_o to_o let_v that_o pass_v yet_o may_v i_o not_o pass_v in_o silence_n that_o 1._o that_o praefat._n fol._n 1._o speak_v of_o the_o great_a commander_n and_o princely_a pilot_n that_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a of_o the_o common_a wealth_n he_o seem_v to_o communicate_v her_o majesty_n sovereign_a authority_n to_o inferior_a person_n and_o do_v not_o once_o vouchsafe_v to_o acknowledge_v her_o princely_a power_n or_o to_o name_v she_o among_o the_o governor_n of_o this_o state_n and_o yet_o such_o disloyal_a traitor_n that_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n and_o deny_v her_o majesty_n power_n as_o be_v excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n scuruinesse_n our_o fellow_n percase_o will_v say_v holiness_n be_v not_o seek_v out_o nor_o bring_v to_o such_o a_o trial_n as_o their_o offence_n deserve_v by_o this_o therefore_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o as_o our_o adversary_n have_v no_o ability_n to_o disprove_v any_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o we_o hold_v so_o he_o have_v utter_o shame_v his_o consort_n and_o the_o crew_n of_o papist_n that_o hitherto_o have_v make_v great_a brag_n of_o this_o their_o champion_n &_o of_o his_o invincible_a argument_n all_o hard_a &_o knotty_a like_o the_o haft_n of_o a_o dougeon_n dagger_n he_o have_v also_o utter_o shame_v himself_o in_o meddle_v with_o these_o matter_n be_v a_o man_n not_o read_v nor_o any_o way_n fit_a to_o discourse_v or_o handle_v matter_n of_o controversy_n the_o which_o that_o it_o may_v further_o appear_v i_o purpose_v god_n willing_a not_o only_o to_o justify_v my_o former_a challenge_n which_o this_o poor_a menowe_n will_v nibble_n at_o but_o also_o to_o discharge_v myself_o honest_o of_o all_o those_o untruth_n and_o falsification_n which_o the_o detractor_n malicious_o go_v about_o to_o charge_v upon_o i_o wherein_o that_o i_o may_v proceed_v more_o formal_o &_o not_o only_a skin_n this_o dead_a dog_n who_o overthrow_n shall_v help_v we_o nothing_o but_o handle_v somewhat_o else_o that_o may_v make_v for_o the_o advantage_n of_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o ignorant_a ensue_v the_o order_n and_o chief_a proposition_n &_o chapter_n of_o the_o discourse_n ensue_v i_o will_v god_n willing_a declare_v first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v and_o which_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o second_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v be_v mere_a novelty_n and_o late_o devise_v fancy_n for_o the_o most_o part_n three_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o true_a catholic_n nor_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a wrong_n offer_v to_o christ_n church_n to_o call_v they_o catholic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o we_o call_v dead_a carcase_n man_n four_o that_o papist_n maintain_v many_o both_o old_a &_o new_a haresy_n and_o point_n of_o doctrine_n contrary_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n five_o that_o they_o be_v idolater_n final_o that_o such_o as_o have_v die_v in_o the_o pope_n quarrel_n in_o england_n be_v unnatural_a traitor_n and_o no_o true_a martyr_n and_o that_o such_o priest_n also_o as_o come_v from_o rome_n with_o commission_n and_o faculty_n from_o the_o pope_n be_v traitor_n and_o enemy_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n and_o so_o to_o be_v repute_v and_o take_v and_o not_o otherwise_o all_o which_o point_v one_o or_o two_o except_v i_o handle_v in_o my_o last_o challenge_n this_o challenge_n thus_o justify_v i_o shall_v god_n will_v present_o encountre_n our_o detractor_n and_o answer_v first_o his_o objection_n concern_v untruth_n second_o his_o quarrel_n concern_v suppose_v falsification_n three_o his_o vain_a &_o childish_a observation_n and_o to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o our_o adversary_n plead_v and_o how_o much_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o shun_v all_o conference_n and_o dispute_v concern_v lie_n and_o falsification_n i_o will_v also_o for_o further_a evidence_n against_o they_o set_v down_o first_o certain_a notorious_a lie_n and_o forgery_n commit_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o next_o such_o lie_v and_o forgery_n as_o be_v commit_v by_o their_o principal_a agent_n and_o herein_o first_o i_o will_v declare_v bellarmine_n to_o be_v most_o guilty_a in_o this_o point_n the_o next_o place_n shall_v contain_v baronius_n his_o cardinal_a leasinge_n after_o they_o i_o will_v note_v certain_a notorious_a lie_n and_o forgery_n contain_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o other_o papist_n yea_o of_o parson_n himself_o and_o of_o this_o momus_n in_o his_o new_a nothing_o which_o he_o call_v a_o detection_n of_o lie_n and_o falsification_n final_o to_o answer_v his_o observation_n i_o will_v also_o discourse_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o in_o our_o adversary_n and_o their_o writing_n seem_v worthy_a to_o be_v observe_v and_o all_o this_o to_o let_v our_o adversary_n know_v that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n to_o defend_v themselves_o then_o to_o press_v we_o and_o to_o take_v the_o beam_n out_o of_o their_o own_o eye_n rather_o then_o to_o espy_v mote_n in_o our_o eye_n as_o for_o his_o rail_a word_n &_o rustical_a &_o uncivil_a behaviour_n i_o leave_v to_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o archpriest_n in_o his_o next_o general_a synod_n which_o if_o he_o do_v not_o i_o will_v refer_v he_o over_o to_o be_v answer_v by_o master_n kempe_n upon_o the_o stage_n and_o if_o he_o desist_v not_o his_o rail_n and_o rusticalitie_n either_o upon_o the_o archpriest_n admonition_n or_o master_n kempes_n censure_n i_o assure_v he_o i_o will_v set_v a_o fellow_n to_o answer_v he_o that_o shall_v so_o curry_v he_o and_o his_o consort_n the_o papist_n and_o that_o shall_v in_o such_o sort_n tip_n up_o their_o villainy_n that_o the_o whole_a fraternity_n of_o ass_n shall_v curse_v he_o for_o bray_a so_o uncivil_o i_o hope_v also_o that_o some_o odd_a priest_n or_o other_o out_o of_o his_o grammar_n dictate_v will_v admonish_v he_o to_o look_v better_o to_o his_o grammar_n rule_v and_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o have_v falsify_v a_o verse_n out_o of_o horace_n and_o make_v a_o gross_a fault_n in_o it_o book_n this_o be_v the_o only_a verse_n in_o the_o book_n for_o where_o horace_n say_v quid_fw-la dignum_fw-la tanto_fw-la feret_fw-la hic_fw-la pro_fw-la missor_n hiatu_fw-la our_o wise_a 4._o wise_a pag._n 4._o adversary_n have_v quid_fw-la dignum_fw-la tanto_fw-la proferet_fw-la promissor_n hiatu_fw-la both_o alter_v his_o author_n word_n and_o
they_o build_v all_o upon_o christ_n jesus_n and_o teach_v that_o which_o immediate_o they_o receive_v from_o god_n but_o the_o pope_n receive_v nothing_o immediate_o from_o god_n nor_o do_v he_o now_o preach_v christ_n as_o do_v saint_n peter_n argument_n 2_o further_n the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n most_o solid_a and_o unmovable_a against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v never_o prevail_v but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o see_v against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n both_o have_v already_o and_o may_v further_o prevail_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o ch._n si_fw-mi papa_n do_v 40._o where_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v draw_v with_o he_o innumerable_a soul_n into_o hell_n and_o 16._o and_o in_o matth._n 16._o lyra_n confess_v that_o diverse_a pope_n have_v prove_v apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o that_o final_o be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a particular_a example_n as_o of_o marcellinus_n that_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n of_o liberius_n that_o fall_v into_o arrianisme_n of_o honorius_n condemn_v for_o a_o monothelite_n and_o diverse_a other_o pope_n that_o fall_v into_o diverse_a heresy_n and_o forsake_v the_o true_a faith_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v the_o papist_n will_v deny_v but_o that_o some_o of_o their_o pope_n for_o diverse_a impiety_n and_o wickedness_n be_v damn_v and_o cast_v down_o to_o the_o nethermost_a hell_n how_o then_o can_v that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o foundation_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v argument_n 3_o 3._o 3_o arg._n 3._o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v never_o without_o her_o head_n for_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o the_o same_o for_o evermore_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o shall_v always_o so_o continue_v and_o of_o he_o his_o church_n have_v continual_a dependence_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v often_o without_o her_o head_n the_o pope_n and_o have_v no_o such_o dependence_n on_o he_o but_o that_o she_o may_v well_o subsist_v without_o he_o as_o the_o continual_a vacation_n of_o the_o papacy_n do_v show_v and_o papa_n and_o lib._n the_o auferribilitat●_n papa_n gerson_n do_v confess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o can_v be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n unless_o we_o will_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v be_v without_o a_o head_n or_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n never_o want_v a_o head_n argument_n 4_o 4._o 4_o arg._n 4._o the_o church_n of_o god_n also_o have_v but_o one_o faith_n for_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o lord_n 4._o lord_n ephes_n 4._o so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o faith_n and_o one_o baptism_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o that_o one_o faith_n which_o be_v profess_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n publish_v in_o the_o wicked_a conventicle_n of_o constance_n and_o trent_n and_o by_o ihat_o profession_n which_o pius_n the_o 4._o decree_v to_o be_v exact_v of_o all_o that_o be_v promote_v in_o school_n for_o neither_o do_v the_o first_o christian_n admit_v all_o the_o tradition_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o call_v apostolical_a nor_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n and_o usual_a rite_n practise_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o they_o nor_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n or_o transubstantiation_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v if_o any_o papist_n think_v otherwise_o let_v he_o show_v i_o either_o any_o such_o like_a faith_n or_o prove_v i_o any_o such_o doctrine_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o we_o must_v needs_o believe_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v first_o publish_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o by_o pius_n the_o 4._o by_o name_n but_o a_o wicked_a man_n for_o doctrine_n and_o life_n and_o by_o other_o pope_n confirm_a argument_n 5_o 5._o 5_o arg._n 5._o the_o ground_n also_o and_o foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a christian_n faith_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o ground_n &_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o 2._o the_o ephes_n 2._o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o household_n of_o god_n and_o citizen_n of_o saint_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n neither_o do_v he_o admit_v any_o other_o foundation_n saint_n 21._o saint_n apocal._n 21._o john_n show_v that_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n and_o in_o they_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n and_o this_o because_o upon_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v build_v for_o as_o 1._o as_o lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 1._o ireneus_fw-la signify_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o she_o apostle_n leave_v unto_o we_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n neither_o may_v we_o think_v that_o peter_n be_v more_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n than_o paul_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n at_o dicis_fw-la super_fw-la petrum_fw-la fundatur_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la say_v j●ui●_n say_v lib._n advers_a j●ui●_n hierome_n licèt_fw-la id_fw-la ipsum_fw-la in_o alio_fw-la loco_fw-la super_fw-la omnes_fw-la apostolos_fw-la &_o cuncti_fw-la clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la accipiant_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la aequo_fw-la super_fw-la eos_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la solidetur_fw-la theophylact_n also_o without_o give_v any_o prerogative_n to_o one_o say_v 2._o say_v in_o ephes_n 2._o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n neither_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n either_o allow_v or_o mention_v any_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n who_o in_o all_o their_o writing_n do_v preach_v christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v now_o build_v upon_o a_o diverse_a foundation_n for_o first_o they_o acknowledge_v unwritten_a tradition_n to_o be_v a_o foundation_n equal_a to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n trid._n god_n sess_n 4._o council_n trid._n traditiones_fw-la ipsas_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la mores_fw-la pertinentes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vel_fw-la ore-tenus_o à_fw-la christo_fw-la vel_fw-la à_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la dictatas_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la successione_n in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la conseruatas_fw-la pari_fw-la pietatis_fw-la affectu_fw-la ac_fw-la reverentia_fw-la scilicet_fw-la ac_fw-la scripturas_fw-la sacras_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ac_fw-la veneratur_fw-la the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n make_v tradition_n as_o well_o concern_v faith_n as_o manner_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n whereof_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v as_o well_o believe_v the_o fashion_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n as_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n demonstrate_v conabimur_fw-la say_v 4._o say_v lib_fw-la 4._o de_fw-la verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o bellarmine_n scripturas_fw-la sine_fw-la traditionibus_fw-la nec_fw-la fuisse_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessarias_fw-la nec_fw-la sufficientes_fw-la he_o deni_v also_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a canon_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n without_o tradition_n next_o they_o receive_v the_o pope_n decretal_n and_o upon_o their_o determination_n do_v they_o build_v their_o faith_n as_o 15._o as_o c._n inter_fw-la do_v 19_o etc._n etc._n sancta_fw-la do_v 15._o appear_v by_o their_o decretal_n though_o counterfeit_n and_o doctr_n and_o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o relect_v princip_n doctr_n stapleton_n stick_v not_o to_o affirm_v so_o much_o in_o express_a word_n alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la missi_fw-la say_v he_o eorumue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la and_o ibidem_fw-la and_o ibidem_fw-la again_o christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la habemus_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la evangelicis_fw-la &_o apostolicis_fw-la aliud_fw-la we_o have_v say_v he_o another_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n diverse_a from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n can_v then_o the_o romish_a congregation_n be_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o even_o in_o the_o main_a foundation_n of_o religion_n be_v depart_v from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n argument_n 6_o 6._o 6_o arg._n 6._o the_o principle_n likewise_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o ground_n &_o principle_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n for_o we_o have_v show_v in_o our_o last_o argument_n that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v no_o canon_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o certain_a principle_n of_o faith_n beside_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n admit_v the_o book_n of_o judith_n tobia_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la wisdom_n of_o the_o maccabee_n by_o the_o
ancient_a church_n account_v apocryphal_a as_o proverb_n as_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la paulin._n in_o prolog_n in_o proverb_n hierome_n synop_n hierome_n in_o synop_n athanasius_n and_o diverse_a of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 〈◊〉_d witness_n it_o allow_v also_o the_o old_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n though_o different_a from_o the_o original_a book_n the_o same_o also_o admit_v for_o principle_n of_o faith_n the_o sentence_n of_o pope_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o diverse_a other_o ground_n as_o stapleton_n dispute_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrinalibus_fw-la principijs_fw-la argument_n 7_o 7._o 7_o arg._n 7._o never_o certes_o do_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n speak_v evil_a of_o scripture_n 2._o scripture_n lib._n 3_o adversus_fw-la haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o irenaeus_n say_v it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n to_o fall_v into_o dislike_n of_o they_o and_o to_o accuse_v they_o as_o for_o the_o child_n of_o god_n they_o can_v either_o calumniate_v or_o light_o esteem_v their_o heavenly_a father_n testament_n or_o refuse_v to_o hear_v his_o voice_n but_o the_o scripture_n contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o the_o eternal_a testament_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v right_o call_v his_o testament_n in_o the_o scripture_n also_o god_n speak_v unto_o us._n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o be_v christ_n sheep_n we_o can_v but_o hearken_v to_o his_o voice_n my_o sheep_n say_v our_o 10._o our_o john_n 10._o saviour_n hear_v my_o voice_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v still_o carp_a at_o scripture_n as_o if_o they_o be_v neither_o sufficient_a nor_o perspicuous_a 4._o perspicuous_a lib._n 4._o the_o verl_n die_v c._n 4._o bellarmine_n say_v they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n doctr_n tradition_n praefat_fw-la in_o re●act_n princip_n doctr_n stapleton_n deni_v they_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n the_o author_n of_o the_o annotation_n upon_o the_o rhemish_a testament_n do_v call_v they_o most_o blasphemous_o a_o kill_a letter_n and_o signify_v that_o the_o read_n of_o they_o be_v pernicious_a colo●_n pernicious_a censur_fw-fr colo●_n other_o slander_v they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n or_o a_o matter_n and_o subject_n of_o contention_n argument_n 8_o the_o church_n of_o god_n never_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n either_o a_o god_n on_o the_o earth_n or_o christ_n vicar_n general_a or_o universal_a bishop_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n admit_v all_o this_o the_o canonist_n exalt_v he_o like_o a_o god_n doct_v god_n epist_n ad_fw-la gregorium_fw-la 13._o ante_fw-la princip_n doct_v stapleton_n call_v he_o supremum_fw-la numen_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la general_o they_o call_v he_o universal_a bishop_n and_o condemn_v all_o that_o hold_v contrary_a argument_n 9_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v keep_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n 1._o prophet_n gal._n 1._o without_o addition_n alteration_n or_o corruption_n and_o the_o apostle_n pronounce_v he_o accurse_v 34._o accurse_v adverse_a haeres_fw-la c._n 34._o that_o teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o teach_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o catholic_n to_o keep_v the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n commit_v to_o they_o in_o trust_n and_o to_o condemn_v profane_a novelty_n catholicorun_n say_v he_o hoc_fw-la ferè_fw-la proprium_fw-la deposita_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la &_o commissa_fw-la seruare_fw-la damnare_fw-la prophanas_fw-la vocum_fw-la novitates_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la dixit_fw-la &_o iterum_fw-la dixit_fw-la apostolus_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la annuntiaverit_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la quod_fw-la acceptum_fw-la est_fw-la anathematizare_fw-la but_o the_o papist_n keep_v not_o entire_a the_o original_a writing_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n nor_o allow_v they_o as_o authentical_a neither_o will_v they_o yield_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a and_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n nor_o do_v they_o allow_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a law_n nor_o do_v they_o keep_v christ_n institution_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n distribute_v the_o kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o communicant_n but_o have_v unto_o this_o rule_n add_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v also_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n and_o add_v many_o precept_n and_o rule_n not_o receive_v in_o the_o apostolic_a church_n argument_n 10_o the_o true_a church_n can_v not_o endure_v heretic_n and_o false_a apostle_n that_o teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n apostle_n christ_n jesus_n speak_v of_o his_o sheep_n say_v they_o will_v not_o follow_v a_o stranger_n but_o fly_v from_o he_o for_o that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n the_o apostle_n give_v unto_o christian_n a_o special_a charge_n concern_v this_o point_n if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o say_v s._n 2._o s._n epist_n 2._o john_n and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o to_o house_n neither_o salute_v he_o tantum_n apostoli_fw-la &_o horum_fw-la discipuli_fw-la say_v 3._o say_v lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 3._o irenaeus_n habuerunt_fw-la timorem_fw-la ut_fw-la neque_fw-la verbotenus_fw-la communicarent_fw-la alicui_fw-la eorum_fw-la qui_fw-la adulteraverant_fw-la veritatem_fw-la let_v we_o separate_v ourselves_o say_v cyprian_n as_o far_o from_o they_o as_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n the_o true_a church_n certes_o can_v not_o embrace_v erroneous_a doctrine_n neither_o can_v any_o heretic_n be_v account_v christian_n si_fw-mi haeretici_fw-la sint_fw-la say_v haeret_fw-la say_v de_fw-fr praescrip_n advers_a haeret_fw-la tertullian_n christianiesse_n non_fw-la possunt_fw-la but_o the_o papist_n communicate_v with_o heretic_n as_o liberius_n felix_n vigilius_n honorius_n john_n the_o 22._o and_o 23._o who_o in_o my_o treatise_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n i_o declare_v to_o be_v heretic_n they_o do_v also_o embrace_v the_o heresy_n of_o angelick_n in_o worship_v angel_n of_o the_o collyridian_n in_o worship_v the_o bless_a virgin_n of_o martion_n valentinus_n and_o other_o in_o deny_v christ_n true_a body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v solid_a and_o palpaple_n of_o the_o pelagian_n in_o magnify_v their_o merit_n and_o the_o force_n of_o free_a will_n of_o the_o carpocratian_o in_o burn_a incense_n and_o worship_v the_o image_n of_o jesus_n and_o paul_n and_o diverse_a other_o as_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o particular_o declare_v argument_n 11_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n admit_v not_o the_o apocryphal_a legend_n of_o s._n george_n cyricus_n and_o julitta_n for_o these_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o censure_n of_o gelasius_n who_o testify_v that_o the_o old_a church_n of_o rome_n receive_v not_o any_o such_o legend_n but_o the_o latter_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o papist_n of_o our_o time_n do_v admit_v these_o legend_n and_o out_o they_o they_o gather_v their_o tradition_n which_o they_o make_v equal_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n argument_n 12_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v the_o mistress_n and_o teacher_n of_o truth_n and_o admit_v no_o falsehood_n nor_o untruth_n the_o apostle_n do_v call_v she_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n est_fw-la fons_fw-la veritatis_fw-la say_v ult._n say_v instit_fw-la divin_v lib._n 4._o c._n ult._n lactantius_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la domicilium_fw-la fidei_fw-la that_o be_v she_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n she_o be_v the_o house_n where_o true_a faith_n dwell_v but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v be_v not_o only_o a_o receptacle_n of_o lewd_a opinion_n but_o also_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o lie_n and_o vanity_n and_o so_o petrarch_n for_o above_o two_o hundred_o year_n doubt_v not_o to_o call_v she_o madre_n d'errori_fw-la e_fw-it tempio_fw-la d'haeresia_n say_v he_o which_o authority_n albeit_o they_o regard_v not_o yet_o the_o same_o which_o he_o avouch_v be_v prove_v first_o in_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n avouch_v lie_v tradition_n as_o for_o example_n the_o tradition_n concern_v ember_n fast_n and_o fast_n upon_o saint_n vigiles_fw-la concern_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n concern_v the_o word_n &_o aeterni_fw-la &_o mysterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la thrust_v into_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o chalice_n and_o such_o like_a second_o the_o same_o approove_v lie_v and_o forge_a decretal_n as_o for_o example_n c._n constantinus_n do_v 96._o and_o c._n ego_fw-la ludovicus_fw-la do_v 63._o and_o c._n quis_fw-la nesciat_fw-la do_v 11._o &_o infinite_a more_o of_o that_o nature_n three_o the_o same_o give_v credit_n to_o caesar_n baronius_n his_o most_o lie_a and_o fabulous_a narration_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v commend_v they_o
and_o last_o resolution_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n argument_n 15_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n never_o burn_v the_o scripture_n no_o albeit_o there_o be_v error_n in_o the_o greek_a translation_n of_o theodosion_n and_o symachus_n and_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n and_o in_o all_o the_o latin_a translation_n the_o vulgar_a and_o old_a edition_n not_o except_v z_o yet_o do_v the_o true_a church_n never_o burn_v the_o scripture_n for_o that_o be_v practise_v by_o dioclesian_n and_o other_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o heathen_a man_n rather_o than_o by_o any_o that_o carry_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v cause_v god_n holy_a word_n to_o be_v burn_v under_o pretence_n of_o false_a translation_n which_o notwithstanding_o she_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v false_a she_o do_v therefore_o plain_o declare_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o not_o of_o christ_n argument_n 16_o the_o true_a church_n do_v never_o prohibit_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v public_o read_v in_o such_o tongue_n as_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o understand_v nor_o do_v she_o ever_o condemn_v they_o and_o burn_v they_o for_o heretic_n that_o read_v they_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n for_o our_o saviour_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o no_o question_n but_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o teach_v they_o as_o well_o by_o writing_n as_o by_o word_n 86._o in_o psal_n 86._o s._n hierome_n say_v that_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o belong_v to_o priest_n but_o also_o to_o the_o people_n non_fw-la scripserunt_fw-la say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n paucis_fw-la sed_fw-la universo_fw-la populo_fw-la and_o our_o saviour_n where_o he_o command_v his_o auditor_n to_o search_v the_o scripture_n mean_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o all_o to_o read_v they_o final_o what_o be_v more_o unreasonable_a see_v the_o scripture_n contain_v god_n holy_a law_n and_o his_o eternal_a testament_n than_o that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v red_a in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o child_n to_o understand_v their_o heavenly_a father_n testament_n and_o last_o will_n but_o the_o romish_a congregation_n prohibit_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v public_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o 9_o and_o index_n libr._n prohib_o à_fw-fr pio_n 9_o prohibit_v all_o translation_n but_o such_o as_o themselves_o set_v forth_o which_o be_v most_o wicked_a &_o perverse_a the_o bloody_a inquisitor_n have_v also_o burn_v diverse_a poor_a people_n for_o read_v scripture_n in_o english_a as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o register_n of_o lincoln_n and_o london_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o day_n final_o navarrus_n a_o brave_a romish_a doctor_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v mortal_a sin_n for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o dispute_v of_o religion_n laicus_fw-la disputans_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la say_v 11._o say_v in_o primum_fw-la precept_n c._n 11._o navarrus_n peccat_fw-la mortaliter_fw-la argument_n 17_o our_o saviour_n christ_n 4._o christ_n john_n 4._o teach_v we_o that_o all_o true_a worshipper_n do_v worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n venit_fw-la hora_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la est_fw-la say_v our_o saviour_n quando_fw-la very_fw-la adoratores_fw-la adorabant_fw-la patrem_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la &_o veritate_fw-la and_o god_n by_o his_o prophet_n 15._o prophet_n isay_n 29._o &_o matth._n 15._o isay_n do_v condemn_v his_o people_n that_o honour_v he_o with_o their_o lip_n their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o he_o the_o apostle_n also_o coloss_n 2._o will_v not_o have_v christian_n condemn_v in_o respect_n of_o meat_n drink_n and_o holy_a day_n and_o reprove_v those_o that_o make_v decree_n concern_v touch_v and_o taste_v and_o such_o like_a ceremony_n he_o do_v also_o utter_o 14._o utter_o 1._o cor._n 14._o condemn_v prayer_n in_o a_o strange_a language_n and_o not_o understand_v of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o but_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n which_o the_o papist_n use_n and_o most_o commend_v do_v whole_o consist_v in_o external_a ceremony_n as_o knock_v lift_v up_o of_o the_o sacrament_n cense_v light_n and_o such_o like_a they_o also_o rather_o honour_n god_n with_o their_o lip_n than_o their_o heart_n not_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v &_o think_v that_o to_o gaze_v on_o the_o mass_n be_v to_o serve_v god_n final_o they_o have_v many_o decree_n concern_v meat_n drink_n saint_n day_n and_o also_o concern_v touch_v and_o taste_v and_o such_o like_a be_v it_o not_o then_o apparent_a that_o they_o be_v no_o true_a worshipper_n argument_n 18_o the_o church_n of_o 20._o of_o exod._n 20._o christ_n do_v worship_n but_o one_o god_n according_a to_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o i_o and_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o 4._o of_o matth._n 4._o christ_n thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v but_o the_o papist_n worship_n the_o image_n of_o god_n as_o god_n himself_o and_o give_v as_o much_o honour_n to_o the_o image_n as_o to_o the_o original_n cum_fw-la christus_fw-la say_v 3._o say_v p._n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o thomas_n aquinas_n adoretur_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la eius_fw-la imago_fw-la sit_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la adoranda_fw-la see_v as_o christ_n be_v honour_v with_o divine_a worship_n say_v he_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o image_n be_v also_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o divine_a worship_n and_o friar_n in_o their_o sermon_n speak_v to_o the_o crucifix_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v to_o it_o thou_o have_v redeem_v we_o thou_o have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o thy_o father_n which_o 23._o which_o bellar._n the_o cult_a imag_n lib._n 2._o c._n 23._o bellarmine_n himself_o can_v not_o deny_v he_o confess_v also_o that_o image_n may_v be_v worship_v with_o that_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a to_o the_o original_n admitti_fw-la potest_fw-la imagine_v posse_fw-la col●_n improprie_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la accidens_fw-la eodem_fw-la genere_fw-la cultus_fw-la quo_fw-la exemplum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la colitur_fw-la they_o also_o worship_v the_o sacrament_n with_o divine_a worship_n and_o fall_v down_o before_o it_o but_o neither_o be_v image_n god_n nor_o be_v the_o sacrament_n god_n final_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o service_n or_o doulia_fw-la be_v due_a to_o saint_n and_o this_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v how_o then_o can_v they_o show_v that_o they_o worship_n and_o serve_v one_o true_a god_n argument_n 19_o the_o catholic_a church_n only_o say_v ult._n say_v instit_fw-la 4._o c._n ult._n lactantius_n do_v retain_v the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v any_o society_n be_v term_v god_n church_n which_o retain_v not_o god_n true_a worship_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o retain_v god_n true_a worship_n for_o first_o they_o worship_v god_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o commandment_n of_o man_n which_o our_o saviour_n 15._o saviour_n matth._n 15._o christ_n condemn_v second_o they_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o creature_n as_o we_o show_v in_o our_o last_o argument_n three_o their_o worship_n consist_v principal_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o many_o superstition_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n as_o i_o have_v show_v particular_o and_o large_o in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o mass_n against_o bellarmine_n argument_n 20_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n beléeve_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v perfect_a god_n and_o perfect_a man_n and_o that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n for_o these_o two_o point_n be_v article_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o first_o be_v in_o term_n contain_v in_o the_o créed_a of_o athanasius_n the_o second_o be_v express_v in_o the_o apostle_n cré_v but_o the_o papist_n attribute_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n such_o a_o body_n as_o be_v neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a and_o can_v neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v nor_o help_v himself_o nor_o other_o be_v oftentimes_o devour_v by_o mouse_n and_o other_o brute_n beast_n can_v show_v how_o these_o quality_n can_v be_v in_o a_o perfect_a man_n neither_o can_v they_o show_v that_o a_o perfect_a man_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o or_o that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v proper_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o not_o only_o beléeve_v but_o also_o apprehend_v with_o man_n hand_n and_o tooth_n 4._o tooth_n contr._n eutyth_n lib._n 4._o c._n 4._o vigilius_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v not_o in_o earth_n fulgentius_n write_v to_o thrasimundus_n say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o property_n of_o a_o true_a body_n carn_v body_n de_fw-fr resur_fw-fr carn_v tertullian_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n
be_v in_o the_o palace_n of_o heaven_n neither_o may_v we_o suspect_v that_o he_o suppose_v that_o christ_n body_n may_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v in_o earth_n saint_n luc._n saint_n lib._n 10._o in_o c._n 24._o luc._n ambrose_n say_v that_o we_o touch_v not_o christ_n with_o corporal_a handle_n but_o by_o faith_n and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v he_o on_o the_o earth_n nor_o after_o the_o flesh_n if_o we_o will_v find_v he_o final_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v so_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o we_o do_v not_o enjoy_v he_o here_o on_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o his_o bodily_a presence_n as_o i_o have_v declare_v at_o large_a in_o my_o treatise_n against_o bellarmine_n concern_v the_o real_a suppose_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n argument_n 21_o the_o true_a church_n beléeve_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n arbitramur_fw-la iustificari_fw-la hominem_fw-la say_v the_o 3._o the_o rom._n 3._o apostle_n per_fw-la fidem_fw-la sine_fw-la operibus_fw-la legis_fw-la &_o rom._n 4._o si_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la lege_fw-la haeredes_fw-la sunt_fw-la exinanita_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la &_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n likewise_o of_o the_o father_n pelag._n father_n dial._n 1._o contr_n pelag._n tunc_fw-la ergo_fw-la iusti_fw-la sumus_fw-la say_v hierome_n quando_fw-la nos_fw-la peccatores_fw-la fatemur_fw-la &_o iustitia_fw-la nostra_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la proprio_fw-la merito_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la dei_fw-la consistit_fw-la misericordia_fw-la and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o charity_n or_o by_o our_o work_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n hieronymum_n saint_n epist_n 29._o ad_fw-la hieronymum_n augustine_n plenissima_fw-la charitas_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la iam_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la augeri_fw-la quamdiu_fw-la hîc_fw-la homo_fw-la vivit_fw-la est_fw-la in_o nemine_fw-la quamdiu_fw-la autem_fw-la augeri_fw-la potest_fw-la profectò_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la minus_fw-la est_fw-la quàm_fw-la debet_fw-la ex_fw-la vitio_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la quo_fw-la vitio_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la faciat_fw-la bonum_fw-la &_o non_fw-la peccet_fw-la neither_o may_v we_o suppose_v where_o the_o father_n do_v speak_v of_o justice_n of_o work_n that_o they_o mean_v any_o other_o justice_n but_o such_o as_o declare_v we_o justify_v and_o which_o without_o remission_n of_o sin_n can_v stand_v before_o god_n but_o the_o papist_n both_v believe_v and_o teach_v contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o 6._o the_o sess_n 6._o act_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n and_o frivolous_a dispute_n of_o seq_fw-la of_o lib._n 4._o the_o iustific_a c._n 10._o &_o seq_fw-la bellarmine_n who_o endevour_v to_o show_v that_o man_n be_v able_a to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o that_o our_o work_n do_v justify_v us._n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n intention_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n if_o he_o say_v true_o argument_n 22_o the_o true_a church_n also_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o boast_v or_o glory_n of_o our_o work_n and_o that_o the_o reward_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n and_o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n simo_n abraham_n ex_fw-la operibus_fw-la iustificatus_fw-la est_fw-la say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o habet_fw-la gloriam_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la and_o rom._n 6._o stipendium_fw-la peccati_fw-la mors_fw-la gratia_fw-la autem_fw-la dei_fw-la vita_fw-la aeterna_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la jesu_fw-la domino_fw-la nostro_fw-la likewise_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o we_o can_v we_o be_v to_o acknowledge_v ourselves_o to_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n and_o that_o our_o suffering_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n that_o be_v to_o be_v reveal_v and_o this_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n also_o beléeve_v and_o have_v from_o time_n to_o time_n beléeve_v tua_fw-la peccata_fw-la sunt_fw-la say_v augustine_n in_o psal_n 70._o merita_fw-la dei_fw-la sunt_fw-la supplicium_fw-la tibi_fw-la debetur_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la praemium_fw-la venerit_fw-la sva_fw-la dona_fw-la coronabit_fw-la non_fw-la merita_fw-la tua_fw-la and_o hilary_n in_o psal_n 51._o non_fw-la illa_fw-la ipsa_fw-la iustitiae_fw-la opera_fw-la sufficenrent_fw-la ad_fw-la perfectae_fw-la beatitudinis_fw-la meritum_fw-la nisi_fw-la misericordia_fw-la dei_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la iustitiae_fw-la voluntate_fw-la humanarum_fw-la demutationum_fw-la &_o motuum_fw-la non_fw-la reputet_fw-la vitia_fw-la but_o the_o papist_n hold_v that_o we_o may_v trust_v in_o our_o work_n as_o appear_v by_o bellarmine_n dispute_n lib._n 5._o the_o iustific_a c._n 7._o and_o say_v that_o all_o sin_n do_v not_o deserve_v death_n and_o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v due_a for_o our_o work_n argument_n 23_o the_o true_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v no_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o christ_n alone_o which_o be_v also_o the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n christ_n say_v the_o 2._o the_o ephes_n 2._o apostle_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o he_o be_v saviour_n of_o his_o body_n neither_o be_v the_o title_n of_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n due_a to_o peter_n peter_n the_o apostle_n say_v constantinop_n say_v lib._n 4._o epist_n 38_o ad_fw-la joan._n constantinop_n gregory_n be_v the_o first_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o paul_n andrew_n and_o john_n what_o be_v they_o but_o head_n of_o diverse_a parish_n and_o yet_o all_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n saint_n 9_o saint_n de_n ago_o christ_n &_o in_o psal_n 9_o augustine_n say_v that_o christ_n jesus_n that_o be_v the_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o title_n of_o mediator_n only_o belong_v to_o our_o saviour_n yet_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o head_n and_o ob_v and_o in_o gloss_n in_o c._n unam_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v bertrand_n blasphemous_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v discreet_a if_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v a_o vicar_n general_a behind_o he_o and_o this_o do_v 31._o do_v praefat._n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr pontiff_a rom._n &_o lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 31._o bellarmine_n very_o well_o allow_v and_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v due_a to_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o congregation_n than_o the_o true_a church_n that_o have_v either_o two_o head_n or_o a_o head_n beside_o christ_n jesus_n argument_n 24_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o church_n be_v before_o there_o be_v either_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o chief_a priest_n among_o the_o jew_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o rock_n and_o her_o foundation_n as_o appear_v by_o bellarmine_n preface_n before_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n and_o do_v take_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v her_o foundation_n 31._o foundation_n lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 31._o bellarmine_n among_o other_o the_o pope_n title_n do_v reckon_v this_o for_o one_o that_o he_o be_v fundamentum_fw-la aedificii_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la that_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n argument_n 25_o the_o true_a church_n be_v christ_n faithful_a spouse_n oseae_n 2._o god_n speak_v to_o his_o church_n say_v sponsabo_fw-la te_fw-la mihi_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la the_o church_n also_o be_v christ_n spouse_n harken_v to_o he_o alone_o and_o of_o he_o be_v most_o dear_o belove_v en_fw-fr dilectus_fw-la meus_fw-la say_v the_o 2._o the_o cantic_a 2._o church_n loquor_fw-la mihi_fw-la surge_n propera_fw-la amica_fw-la mea_fw-la columba_fw-la mea_fw-la formosa_fw-la mea_fw-la &_o veni_fw-la cyprian_n say_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v draw_v to_o like_v of_o a_o adulterer_n adulterari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la say_v ecclesiae_fw-la say_v de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la he_o christi_fw-la sponsa_fw-la incorrupta_fw-la est_fw-la &_o pudica_fw-la but_o the_o 38._o the_o turrecrem_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 28._o &_o aquin._n in_o 4._o scent_n do_v 38._o church_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v her_o spouse_n and_o 31._o and_o lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 31._o bellarmine_n do_v maintain_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v just_o entitle_v the_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o without_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o pope_n own_o ecclesiae_fw-la own_o c._n intercorporalia_fw-la de_fw-fr translat_fw-la episc_fw-la etc._n etc._n quoniam_fw-la de_fw-fr immunit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la word_n where_o he_o challenge_v this_o title_n of_o spouse_n to_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o yet_o i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o say_v of_o the_o church_n sponsabo_fw-la te_fw-la mihi_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la nor_o propera_fw-la amica_fw-la mea_fw-la columba_fw-la mea_fw-la nor_o do_v the_o true_a church_n say_v of_o the_o pope_n en_fw-fr dilectus_fw-la meus_fw-la what_o then_o rest_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n apocalyp_n
1.7_o out_o of_o who_o cup_n the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v drunken_a so_o many_o abomination_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o lover_n and_o spouse_n of_o this_o adulterous_a and_o unchaste_a congregation_n argument_n 26_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o necessary_o tie_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o never_o be_v subject_n to_o his_o decretaline_a law_n quae_fw-la sursum_fw-la est_fw-la jerusalem_n say_v the_o 4._o the_o galat._n 4._o apostle_n libera_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la mater_fw-la nostra_fw-la so_o likewise_o be_v her_o child_n for_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o law_n if_o the_o mother_n be_v free_a so_o likewise_o be_v her_o child_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v necessary_o tie_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n ob_v pope_n c._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr maiorit_fw-la &_o ob_v boniface_n the_o 8._o determine_v that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n necessary_a unto_o salvation_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o 2._o and_o lib._n the_o eccles_n milit_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n do_v exclude_v all_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o live_v not_o under_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o pope_n final_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o papist_n that_o such_o as_o acknowledge_v not_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v 5._o be_v ibidem_fw-la c._n 5._o schismatics_n be_v it_o not_o then_o manifest_a that_o those_o that_o live_v under_o the_o slavery_n of_o antichrist_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n argument_n 27_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o judge_n and_o lawgiver_n that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v soul_n unus_fw-la est_fw-la legislator_n &_o index_n say_v saint_n 4._o saint_n jacob_n 4._o james_n qui_fw-la potest_fw-la perdere_fw-la &_o liberare_fw-la but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n for_o a_o supreme_a judge_n and_o lawgiver_n and_o hold_v that_o his_o law_n be_v of_o power_n to_o bind_v the_o conscience_n as_o bellarmine_n teach_v his_o disciple_n lib._n 4._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 16._o and_o that_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o casuiste_n and_o the_o groundwork_n of_o those_o that_o work_n on_o man_n conscience_n can_v this_o then_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o live_v in_o such_o bondage_n argument_n 28_o the_o true_a church_n never_o command_v christian_n to_o make_v public_a confession_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o the_o archangel_n michael_n to_o saint_n john_n baptist_n or_o to_o the_o holy_a apoples_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o to_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o heaven_n the_o confession_n of_o saint_n augustine_n be_v extant_a and_o to_o be_v see_v so_o likewise_o be_v there_o diverse_a confession_n to_o be_v find_v both_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o public_a liturgy_n and_o yet_o can_v we_o not_o find_v any_o of_o this_o nature_n nay_o in_o the_o form_n of_o the_o mass_n prescribe_v by_o missae_fw-la by_o ordo_fw-la rom._n cap._n de_fw-fr forma_fw-la celebrat_fw-la missae_fw-la a_o ancient_a order_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o form_n of_o confession_n that_o be_v now_o use_v neither_o can_v robert_n parson_n or_o bellarmine_n or_o any_o of_o that_o faction_n show_v that_o any_o christian_n be_v wont_v to_o say_v confiteor_fw-la deo_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la bea●ae_fw-la mariae_fw-la semper_fw-la virgini_fw-la beato_fw-la michaeli_n archangelo_fw-la beato_fw-la joanni_fw-la baptistae_fw-la sanctis_fw-la apostolis_fw-la petro_n &_o paulo_n &_o omnibus_fw-la sanctis_fw-la do_v they_o not_o therefore_o that_o use_v this_o form_n in_o all_o their_o mass_n show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n that_o join_v angel_n and_o saint_n with_o god_n and_o seem_v to_o confess_v that_o they_o know_v our_o sin_n and_o that_o they_o be_v our_o judge_n and_o have_v power_n to_o pardon_v our_o offence_n argument_n 29_o christ_n true_a church_n retain_v no_o sacrament_n but_o such_o as_o christ_n first_o institute_v and_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n and_o that_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o justines_n 2._o apology_n direct_v to_o antoninus_n by_o dionysius_n suppose_v to_o be_v the_o ariopagite_n and_o all_o ancient_a form_n of_o liturgy_n for_o we_o do_v not_o read_v in_o any_o of_o they_o of_o more_o sacrament_n than_o two_o but_o the_o popish_a congregation_n have_v make_v evangelical_a sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n order_n and_o penance_n of_o which_o the_o first_o two_o be_v institute_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o three_o be_v a_o act_n always_o necessary_a for_o obtain_v of_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o never_o account_v a_o sacrament_n as_o want_v a_o sacramental_a sign_n and_o also_o formal_a institution_n they_o have_v also_o make_v sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n and_o give_v they_o both_o sign_n &_o form_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v never_o know_v in_o ancient_a time_n be_v they_o therefore_o not_o likely_a to_o prove_v a_o new_a church_n that_o have_v institute_v diverse_a new_a sacrament_n argument_n 30_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n never_o beléeve_v that_o matrimony_n and_o order_n contain_v grace_n in_o that_o sort_n which_o the_o papist_n teach_v neither_o do_v they_o believe_v to_o obtain_v justification_n through_o confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n but_o the_o pope_n church_n beléeve_v that_o these_o sacrament_n do_v confer_v grace_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o that_o herein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o old_a law_n for_o that_o the_o new_a sacrament_n do_v work_v justification_n and_o not_o the_o old_a the_o first_o be_v apparent_a by_o bellarmine_n discourse_n the_o sacrament_n lib._n 2._o c._n 3._o &_o sequent_a the_o second_o by_o his_o dispute_n lib._n 2._o the_o sacrament_n c._n 12._o &_o sequent_a neither_o will_n any_o papist_n deny_v this_o let_v they_o then_o show_v how_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o grease_v and_o cross_v in_o extreme_a unction_n and_o confirmation_n or_o else_o they_o will_v appear_v to_o be_v stranger_n to_o christ_n church_n argument_n 31_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n do_v 2._o do_v can._n apost_n 10._o &_o council_n antioch_fw-fr c._n 2._o excommunicate_v such_o as_o come_v to_o church_n depart_v before_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la perseveraverint_fw-la in_o oratione_fw-la usque_fw-la dum_fw-la missa_fw-la peragitur_fw-la say_v the_o canon_n necsanctam_fw-la communionem_fw-la percipiunt_fw-la velut_fw-la inquietudines_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la moventes_fw-la convenit_fw-la communione_fw-la privari_fw-la the_o romanistes_n themselves_o also_o c._n peracta_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi do_v confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n peracta_fw-la consecratione_fw-la say_v anacletus_fw-la omnes_fw-la communicent_fw-la qui_fw-la noluerint_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la career_n liminibus_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la &_o apostoli_fw-la statuerunt_fw-la &_o sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o the_o same_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o justine_n martyr_n apolog_n 2._o of_o dionysius_n de_fw-fr eccles_n hierarch_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o do_v take_v they_o for_o good_a cacolicke_n that_o will_v come_v to_o mass_n and_o look_v on_o she_o do_v not_o certes_o excommunicate_a any_o for_o not_o receive_v the_o communion_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n argument_n 32_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v neither_o use_n nor_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o reserve_v the_o eucharist_n in_o pix_n over_o every_o altar_n nor_o to_o carry_v the_o same_o about_o with_o procession_n nor_o to_o light_a candle_n before_o the_o pix_n nor_o to_o bury_v together_o with_o dead_a body_n either_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n or_o the_o chalice_n our_o saviour_n christ_n 11._o christ_n matth._n 26._o &_o luc._n 22._o &_o 1_o cor._n 11._o say_v accipite_fw-la comedite_fw-la &_o bibite_fw-la that_o be_v take_v eat_v drink_n and_o so_o forth_o and_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o christian_n do_v receive_v and_o not_o keep_v the_o sacrament_n in_o pix_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v quite_o contrary_a argument_n 33_o the_o true_a church_n never_o prohibit_v those_o that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o receive_v the_o cup_n also_o neither_o do_v good_a catholic_n abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n have_v rerceive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n quadrage_n body_n serm._n 4._o the_o quadrage_n leo_n say_v they_o be_v manicheye_n that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n take_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o no_o wise_a will_v drink_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o redemtion_n and_o this_o act_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v sacrilegious_a gelasius_n also_o say_v that_o it_o be_v plain_a sacrilege_n to_o divide_v one_o and_o the_o same_o mystery_n and_o receive_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o sacred_a
testimony_n of_o justine_n martyr_n apolog_n 2._o of_o dionyfius_n ecclesiast_fw-la hierarch_n c._n 3._o of_o origen_n lib._n 8._o contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la of_o hierome_n in_o epitaph_n paulae_fw-la ad_fw-la eustochium_fw-la and_o in_o his_o 17._o epistle_n to_o marcelia_n of_o ambrose_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la and_o cyrill_n catech_n 5._o and_o other_o do_v declare_v but_o the_o romish_a church_n will_v have_v no_o other_o tongue_n use_v in_o the_o common_a liturgy_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o public_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o latin_a of_o which_o the_o vulgar_a people_n scarce_o understand_v one_o word_n argument_n 48_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n content_v herself_o with_o the_o religion_n first_o teach_v by_o christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n for_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n be_v the_o church_n build_v and_o as_o marci●n_n as_o lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la marci●n_n tertullian_n say_v id_fw-la verius_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la id_fw-la prius_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_fw-la contrariwise_o 26._o contrariwise_o aduershare_n c._n 26._o vincentius_n litinensis_fw-la say_v that_o be_v a_o trick_n of_o heretic_n not_o to_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o ancient_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o to_o seek_v novelty_n from_o day_n to_o day_n and_o to_o desire_v to_o add_v to_o change_v to_o take_v away_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n first_o deni_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n second_o the_o same_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n three_o the_o same_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v all_o determination_n and_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n final_o that_o church_n have_v add_v and_o change_v the_o ancient_a faith_n argument_n 49_o true_a christian_n never_o kiss_v the_o pope_n toe_n nor_o admit_v his_o outrageous_a dispensation_n or_o gréevous_a law_n nor_o be_v tie_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v unfallible_a but_o the_o romish_a church_n think_v it_o a_o great_a favour_n to_o kiss_v his_o pantofle_n and_o seek_v for_o dispensation_n at_o his_o hand_n and_o bear_v all_o his_o burdensome_a law_n albeit_o not_o with_o out_o great_a grudge_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o peter_n de_fw-fr alliaco_fw-it his_fw-la treatise_n de_fw-la reformatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la by_o vllerstones_n petition_n propose_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o diverse_a complaint_n both_o of_o english_a french_a and_o dutch._n final_o if_o they_o do_v not_o yield_v his_o judgement_n to_o be_v infallible_a then_o must_v they_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v build_v rather_o on_o sand_n than_o on_o a_o rock_n argument_n 50_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n never_o beléeve_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v depose_v prince_n &_o take_v their_o crown_n from_o they_o or_o that_o they_o can_v dispense_v with_o subject_n for_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o their_o liege_n prince_n nay_o the_o apostle_n teach_v obedience_n to_o prince_n and_o peter_n do_v rather_o exhort_v to_o obedience_n than_o rebellion_n the_o canon_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o 83._o the_o can._n 83._o apostle_n do_v severe_o punish_v such_o as_o do_v speak_v reproachful_o of_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o certes_o most_o unlike_a it_o be_v that_o ever_o king_n or_o prince_n will_v have_v embrace_v christian_n religion_n if_o the_o same_o have_v give_v power_n to_o bishop_n to_o depose_v they_o from_o their_o regal_a throne_n and_o to_o subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o their_o liege_n sovereign_n but_o papist_n do_v believe_v and_o 8._o and_o bellar._n lib._n 5._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 6._o 7._o &_o 8._o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o translate_v kingdom_n from_o one_o to_o another_o they_o also_o do_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o oath_n of_o subject_n &_o to_o command_v they_o to_o rebel_v howsoever_o the_o rest_n believe_v pope_n elizabetham_fw-la pope_n in_o bulla_n contra_fw-la elizabetham_fw-la pius_n the_o five_o most_o wicked_o command_v her_o majesty_n subject_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o she_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o the_o like_a insolency_n do_v bullae_fw-la do_v in_o declarat_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la bullae_fw-la sixtus_n quintus_fw-la use_v against_o she_o be_v the_o lord_n anoint_v and_o he_o be_v the_o grease_v and_o mark_v slave_n of_o satan_n both_o he_o and_o pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la do_v wicked_o rail_v against_o she_o and_o the_o like_a course_n do_v that_o flagitious_a pope_n 8._o pope_n in_o bulla_fw-la contr_n henric._n 8._o paul_n the_o three_o take_v against_o her_o majesty_n noble_a father_n and_o this_o be_v now_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o agent_n most_o common_a practice_n to_o raise_v sedition_n against_o christian_n prince_n and_o when_o they_o can_v otherwise_o do_v hurt_v like_o hellhound_n to_o bark_v against_o they_o and_o to_o publish_v infamous_a libel_n tend_v to_o their_o dishonour_n and_o disgrace_n argument_n 51_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v also_o catholic_a and_o comprise_v all_o the_o faithful_a of_o all_o time_n and_o be_v not_o limit_v within_o any_o one_o country_n or_o nation_n for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o in_o our_o créed_a we_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n now_o this_o catholic_a church_n as_o saint_n 56._o saint_n in_o psal_n 56._o augustine_n say_v be_v spread_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n and_o contain_v not_o only_o those_o that_o be_v present_a but_o those_o also_o that_o be_v past_a and_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o catholic_a neither_o do_v it_o contain_v the_o greek_n or_o africane_n or_o man_n of_o asia_n that_o for_o many_o age_n past_o have_v shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o antichrist_n of_o rome_n further_o it_o do_v not_o reach_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n before_o christ_n final_o 2._o final_o lib._n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la milit_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n do_v define_v those_o only_a to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n which_o live_v under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n this_o church_n therefore_o differ_v much_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n argument_n 52_o the_o true_a church_n consist_v not_o of_o fierce_a lion_n nor_o of_o wolf_n nor_o tiger_n nor_o such_o like_a wild_a and_o fierce_a beast_n but_o of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n which_o learn_v of_o christ_n and_o be_v meek_a humble_a and_o gentle_a these_o do_v christ_n commit_v to_o peter_n and_o all_o godly_a pastor_n his_o successor_n to_o be_v feed_v and_o these_o be_v the_o member_n of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o those_o cruel_a one_o that_o be_v more_o like_a to_o lion_n than_o sheep_n they_o shall_v not_o hurt_v nor_o kill_v say_v god_n by_o his_o holy_a 11._o holy_a isai_n 11._o prophet_n in_o all_o my_o holy_a mountain_n nay_o the_o force_n of_o christ_n religion_n be_v such_o that_o it_o make_v savage_a and_o fierce_a people_n to_o become_v meek_a and_o gentle_a the_o wolf_n say_v the_o ibidem_fw-la the_o ibidem_fw-la prophet_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o pard_n shall_v lie_v with_o the_o kid_n quis_fw-la coegit_fw-la barbaros_fw-la gentesque_fw-la alias_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la sedibus_fw-la say_v verb._n say_v lib._n the_o incarnate_a verb._n athanasius_n immanitatem_fw-la deponere_fw-la pacifica_fw-la meditari_fw-la nisi_fw-la christi_fw-la fides_fw-la &_o crucis_fw-la signaculum_fw-la optatus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n against_o parmenian_n speak_v of_o catholic_n to_o heretic_n which_o of_o we_o say_v he_o have_v persecute_v any_o man_n can_v you_o show_v or_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o you_o have_v be_v persecute_v by_o we_o but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v consist_v of_o lion_n tiger_n wolf_n and_o inquisitor_n pope_n and_o friar_n more_o fierce_a and_o cruel_a than_o lion_n tiger_n and_o wolf_n their_o tot_fw-la their_o extr._n de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la per_fw-la tot_fw-la law_n be_v most_o cruel_a their_o execution_n notwithstanding_o pass_v both_o law_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o emperor_n the_o five_o of_o that_o name_n it_o be_v record_v tumult_n record_v meteran_n de_fw-fr belgit_fw-fr tumult_n that_o above_o fifty_o thousand_o person_n be_v condemn_v by_o sentence_n of_o inquisitor_n and_o judge_n and_o execute_v to_o death_n in_o the_o low_a country_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o france_n as_o the_o story_n of_o that_o country_n declare_v threescore_o thousand_o christian_n without_o all_o order_n of_o law_n and_o contrary_a to_o solemn_a oath_n give_v they_o by_o the_o king_n for_o their_o security_n be_v most_o shameful_o and_o treacherous_o murder_v and_o massacre_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o relion_n at_o the_o king_n sister_n marriage_n circiter_fw-la sexaginta_fw-la hominum_fw-la millia_fw-la say_v 508._o say_v hist_o nat._n come_v lib._n 23._o p._n 508._o natalis_n come_v speak_v
call_v rome_n under_o the_o pope_n false_a and_o wicked_a babylon_n gia_n roma_n say_v he_o hor_o '_o babylonia_n fals'eria_fw-la his_o opinion_n be_v likewise_o confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o salzburg_n auentin_n lib._n 7._o michael_n cesenas_n petrus_n blesensis_n and_o other_o and_o so_o guilty_a be_v the_o romanist_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n that_o either_o they_o can_v not_o endure_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n john_n or_o else_o they_o give_v out_o such_o vain_a construction_n of_o it_o as_o neither_o satisfy_v themselves_o nor_o other_o argument_n 63_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v never_o worship_v s._n peter_n nor_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o do_v s._n peter_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v worship_v or_o carry_v on_o man_n shoulder_n or_o to_o have_v his_o pantofle_n kiss_v but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v worship_v the_o pope_n and_o call_v he_o a_o god_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o christ_n vicar_n and_o the_o foundation_n and_o spouse_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n of_o modrusa_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n cry_v out_o to_o leo_n the_o ten_o te_fw-la beatissime_fw-la leo_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la expectavimus_fw-la other_o bear_v he_o on_o their_o shoulder_n other_o cry_v out_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o have_v mercy_n on_o they_o other_o lead_v his_o palfrey_n other_o kiss_v his_o foot_n argument_n 64_o the_o true_a church_n do_v always_o reverent_o think_v of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o according_o do_v she_o use_v they_o it_o be_v a_o common_a say_n that_o holy_a thing_n be_v respective_o and_o reverent_o to_o be_v use_v but_o the_o romish_a church_n neither_o think_v nor_o beléeve_v reverent_o nor_o use_v the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n so_o respective_o as_o the_o holiness_n and_o gravity_n of_o such_o thing_n require_v one_o pope_n cast_v the_o eucharist_n into_o the_o fire_n hildebrandus_fw-la say_v 7._o say_v in_o vita_fw-la gragor_n 7._o beno_n sacramentum_fw-la corporis_fw-la domini_fw-la responsa_fw-la divina_fw-la contra_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la quaerens_fw-la iniecit_fw-la igni_fw-la pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la cast_v one_o agnus_n dei_fw-la into_o the_o water_n of_o tybre_n 5._o tybre_n in_o vita_fw-la de_fw-fr pio_n 5._o and_o another_o into_o the_o fire_n cresciuto_fw-mi il_fw-fr tevere_a say_v hierome_n catena_n pio_n vi_fw-la gittò_fw-la un_fw-it '_o agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o il_fw-it fuoco_fw-it appreso_fw-it in_o una_fw-la casa_fw-la piena_fw-it di_fw-it fieno_fw-la vi_fw-la si_fw-la gitto_fw-la un_fw-fr altero_fw-la all_o papist_n for_o the_o most_o part_n affirm_v that_o if_o a_o dog_n or_o hog_n or_o mouse_n eat_v a_o consecrate_v host_n he_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n real_o and_o proper_o the_o conspirator_n that_o be_v suborn_v by_o sixtus_n quartus_fw-la to_o kill_v laurence_n and_o julian_n de_fw-fr medici_n be_v command_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o church_n and_o at_o the_o instant_n of_o the_o elevation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n dato_n signo_fw-la say_v 5._o say_v lib._n geograph_n 5._o volateran_n cum_fw-la eucharistia_fw-la tolleretur_fw-la when_o the_o pope_n ride_v abroad_o he_o send_v his_o corpus_fw-la domini_fw-la before_o with_o the_o baggage_n and_o with_o the_o base_a servant_n of_o his_o house_n as_o mouluc_n in_o a_o treatise_n direct_v to_o the_o queen_n mother_n of_o france_n declare_v final_o albeit_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o the_o cross_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o divine_a worship_n yet_o do_v the_o pope_n make_v cross_n on_o their_o slipper_n to_o show_v what_o base_a reckon_n they_o make_v of_o their_o religion_n argument_n 65_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o society_n of_o beléeve_v and_o faithful_a people_n and_o a_o communion_n of_o saint_n this_o be_v a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o definition_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n require_v in_o her_o follower_n no_o more_o to_o make_v they_o her_o true_a member_n but_o that_o they_o profess_v the_o romish_a faith_n outward_o and_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n in_o sacrament_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n ut_fw-la aliquis_fw-la aliquo_fw-la modo_fw-la dici_fw-la possit_fw-la pars_fw-la verae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la scripturae_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la non_fw-la putamus_fw-la requiri_fw-la ullam_fw-la internam_fw-la virtutem_fw-la say_v 2._o say_v de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n so_o by_o his_o account_n the_o church_n may_v consist_v of_o heretic_n and_o most_o wicked_a person_n so_o they_o make_v a_o external_a profession_n of_o christianity_n and_o hold_v with_o the_o pope_n but_o such_o can_v not_o be_v part_n or_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n without_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n argument_n 66_o 18._o 66_o matth._n 18._o whosoever_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o heathen_a man_n or_o publican_n but_o he_o that_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o excommunicate_v christian_a prince_n and_o stir_v up_o subject_n to_o rebellion_n and_o debase_v holy_a scripture_n and_o set_v up_o uncerteine_a and_o false_a tradition_n and_o maintain_v false_a doctrine_n idolatry_n and_o heresy_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v account_v a_o publican_n nor_o a_o heathen_a man_n but_o a_o true_a christian_a and_o follower_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o papist_n will_v deny_v perhaps_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n but_o the_o wicked_a excommunication_n of_o paul_n the_o three_o denounce_v against_o henry_n the_o 8._o k._n of_o england_n of_o pius_n 5._o &_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la against_o her_o majesty_n and_o of_o other_o pope_n against_o other_o prince_n and_o the_o stir_n that_o have_v ensue_v of_o they_o do_v prove_v they_o to_o be_v author_n of_o rebellion_n the_o rest_n we_o have_v already_o touch_v and_o shall_v more_o at_o large_a prove_v hereafter_o argument_n 67_o ecclesiae_fw-la 67_o lib._n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la bellarmine_n confess_v and_o all_o papist_n agree_v with_o he_o first_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o maintain_v catholic_a doctrine_n 2._o that_o the_o same_o be_v most_o ancient_a sine_fw-la dubio_fw-la say_v he_o vera_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la antiquior_fw-la est_fw-la qùam_fw-la falsa_fw-la 3._o that_o the_o same_o shall_v always_o continue_v ecclesia_fw-la dicitur_fw-la catholica_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la quia_fw-la semper_fw-la fuit_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la quia_fw-la semper_fw-la erit_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n 4._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v enlarge_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la say_v he_o non_fw-la solum_fw-la debet_fw-la amplecti_fw-la omne_fw-la tempora_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la omne_fw-la loca_fw-la omnes_fw-la nationes_fw-la omne_fw-la hominum_fw-la genera_fw-la 5._o that_o it_o have_v a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n certain_a and_o continual_a 6._o that_o it_o consent_v with_o the_o apostolic_a church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n sexta._fw-it nota_fw-la say_v bellar._n est_fw-la conspiratio_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la antiqua_fw-la 7._o that_o it_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o have_v the_o part_n unite_v among_o themselves_o septima_fw-la nota_fw-la say_v he_o est_fw-la unio_fw-la membrorum_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la capite_fw-la 8._o they_o confess_v also_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a 9_o that_o it_o be_v effectual_a 10._o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o docttrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a ecclesia_fw-la enim_fw-la say_v bellar._n habet_fw-la doctores_fw-la sanctos_fw-la 11._o that_o the_o same_o be_v adorn_v with_o miracle_n &_o prophecy_n 12._o that_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n confess_v the_o doctrine_n thereof_o to_o be_v true_a and_o final_o that_o such_o as_o have_v favour_v the_o church_n have_v prosperous_a success_n and_o such_o as_o disfavour_v it_o evil_a success_n and_o unhappy_a end_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v neither_o call_v catholic_a of_o all_o nor_o be_v it_o catholic_a in_o respect_n of_o place_n or_o doctrine_n nor_o be_v the_o same_o ancient_a the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n be_v not_o establish_v but_o since_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o the_o first_o father_n of_o transubstantiation_n &_o enact_v for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n florence_n &_o trent_n nor_o have_v the_o romish_a church_n any_o assurance_n that_o it_o shall_v always_o continue_v see_v the_o same_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o determination_n in_o neither_o of_o which_o be_v there_o any_o certainty_n for_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v take_v away_o as_o say_v papae_fw-la say_v de_fw-fr auserribilit_fw-la papae_fw-la gerson_n and_o his_o decree_n do_v oftentimes_o alter_v bohemos_n alter_v epist_n 2._o ad_fw-la bohemos_n nicholas_n of_o cusia_n say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o time_n and_o that_o they_o be_v diverse_o to_o be_v understand_v and_o that_o god_n do_v
alter_v his_o judgement_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n we_o see_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v still_o publish_v decretales_fw-la of_o faith_n and_o that_o one_o destroy_v that_o which_o another_o build_v and_o contrariwise_o 4._o it_o be_v plain_a impudence_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v free_a will_n and_o work_n sacrament_n and_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o such_o like_a point_n be_v always_o teach_v and_o receive_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o that_o shall_v appear_v by_o diverse_a particulars_n where_o we_o declare_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o catholic_n 5._o that_o church_n have_v no_o certain_a nor_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n for_o neither_o do_v the_o adversary_n know_v who_o succeed_v peter_n nor_o what_o bishop_n from_o time_n to_o time_n succeed_v one_o another_o nor_o have_v the_o pope_n be_v true_a bishop_n a_o long_a time_n want_v due_a election_n and_o ordination_n and_o relinquish_a utter_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o temporal_a state_n of_o rome_n nor_o can_v they_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o that_o see_v have_v be_v often_o interrupt_v by_o long_a vacation_n distraction_n by_o schism_n intrusion_n of_o dame_n joane_n into_o the_o popedom_n 6_o we_o shall_v easy_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n for_o i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o bellar._n can_v show_v the_o decretales_fw-la to_o consent_n with_o paul_n epistle_n or_o to_o have_v be_v write_v with_o the_o same_o spirit_n 7._o the_o papist_n have_v not_o only_o overthrow_v christ_n prophetical_a office_n in_o teach_v new_a doctrine_n but_o also_o his_o regal_a and_o priestly_a function_n appoint_v a_o new_a government_n never_o establish_v by_o he_o and_o erect_v a_o new_a priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n contrary_a to_o christ_n doctrine_n furthermore_o that_o church_n not_o only_o have_v be_v oftentimes_o distract_v by_o schism_n but_o also_o be_v much_o distract_v by_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o schoolman_n monk_n and_o friar_n in_o every_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o to_o go_v no_o further_o appear_v both_o by_o dionysus_n carthusianus_n upon_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n &_o josephus_n angle_n his_o flores_n doctorum_fw-la and_o bellarmine_n disputation_n wherein_o he_o allege_v in_o every_o point_n diverse_a opinion_n 8._o their_o decretaline_a doctrine_n be_v neither_o sound_n nor_o holy_a stand_v more_o on_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n than_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o establish_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o saint_n depart_v and_o of_o image_n and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n 9_o the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v without_o effect_n be_v uphold_v with_o lie_n fable_n fraud_n fire_n and_o sword_n and_o not_o be_v otherwise_o able_a to_o stand_v 10._o gregory_n the_o 9_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a ambitious_a man_n of_o boniface_n the_o 8._o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o seek_v rather_o to_o rule_v by_o force_n than_o religion_n clement_n the_o 5._o be_v a_o notorious_a adulterer_n as_o vrsperg_n as_o villani_n &_o vrsperg_n story_n write_v john_n the_o 22._o be_v a_o heretic_n &_o a_o ambitious_a man_n yet_o be_v these_o the_o principal_a author_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n for_o as_o for_o friar_n and_o monk_n they_o may_v prate_v their_o pleasure_n but_o the_o chief_a authority_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v be_v in_o the_o pope_n 11._o the_o report_n of_o romish_a miracle_n and_o prophecy_n be_v nothing_o but_o lie_v and_o fable_n and_o stand_v only_o upon_o the_o report_n of_o their_o legend_n 12._o bellarmine_n shall_v never_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o we_o have_v confess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n to_o be_v true_a final_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o agent_n in_o most_o of_o their_o attempt_n have_v have_v no_o good_a success_n charles_n the_o five_o and_o his_o son_n philip_n the_o great_a protector_n of_o the_o popish_a cause_n die_v discontent_n to_o say_v no_o more_o henry_n the_o three_o the_o principal_a agent_n in_o the_o massacre_n of_o france_n be_v kill_v by_o a_o friar_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o other_o massacrer_n come_v to_o violent_a end_n contrariwise_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o maintain_v true_a christian_n against_o all_o the_o force_n and_o ambuscadae_n of_o their_o enemy_n by_o small_a mean_n if_o then_o bellarmine_n say_v true_a the_o romish_a church_n will_v prove_v no_o true_a church_n argument_n 68_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v also_o convince_a not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o 5._o of_o relect._n doct_n princip_n contron_n 1._o q._n 5._o stapleton_n for_o if_o the_o true_a church_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n and_o be_v universal_o disperse_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o have_v continue_v in_o all_o age_n and_o have_v a_o true_a and_o certain_a succession_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o disagree_v not_o about_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o dissent_v from_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v plant_v christian_n religion_n and_o preserve_v the_o same_o throughout_o the_o world_n and_o have_v keep_v the_o apostolic_a form_n of_o government_n and_o prevail_v against_o all_o heresy_n and_o temptation_n keep_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n sound_a and_o intiere_a and_o also_o show_v the_o true_a way_n of_o salvation_n and_o keep_v the_o scripture_n sound_a &_o pure_a from_o corruption_n and_o final_o hold_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a counsel_n as_o blundr_a relectis_fw-la blundr_a princip_n doctrinal_a relectis_fw-la stapleton_n not_o only_o confess_v but_o after_o his_o rude_a and_o most_o odious_a and_o tedious_a fashion_n with_o multitude_n of_o word_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v then_o be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n for_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n be_v as_o absurd_a as_o to_o say_v that_o rome_n be_v jerusalem_n or_o to_o affirm_v that_o rome_n now_o be_v like_a to_o old_a rome_n robert_n parsous_n shall_v do_v we_o a_o special_a favour_n to_o show_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o glory_n and_o fullness_n of_o power_n that_o the_o pope_n challenge_v with_o his_o glorious_a cardinal_n mass_n priest_n mitre_a prelate_n idle_a monk_n lie_v friar_n and_o all_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n concern_v the_o law_n faith_n sacrament_n ceremony_n and_o other_o matter_n come_v from_o jerusalem_n he_o may_v do_v well_o also_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o latter_a scholastical_a &_o decretaline_a doctrine_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v be_v universal_o receive_v throughout_o the_o world_n nay_o that_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o world_n during_o the_o apostle_n time_n or_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o the_o rock_n of_o succession_n of_o pope_n upon_o which_o our_o adversary_n build_v so_o large_a conclusion_n ecclesiae_fw-la conclusion_n lib._n the_o pontiff_a rom._n &_o de_fw-la notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la we_o have_v show_v it_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o bank_n of_o sand_n for_o never_o shall_v the_o pope_n agent_n be_v able_a to_o show_v the_o same_o to_o have_v be_v certain_a or_o continue_v without_o interruption_n it_o be_v also_o apparent_a that_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o diverse_a from_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o the_o same_o and_o that_o there_o be_v infinite_a contradiction_n and_o contrariety_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o chief_a patron_n of_o popery_n albeit_o all_o dissent_n from_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v also_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n by_o diverse_a schism_n further_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v that_o the_o late_a pope_n have_v not_o plant_v but_o rather_o root_v out_o christian_a religion_n out_o of_o diverse_a place_n and_o in_o the_o rest_n have_v corrupt_v it_o with_o diverse_a novelty_n and_o heresy_n final_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_a abrogate_a ancient_a canon_n and_o change_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o church_n government_n but_o also_o corrupt_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n by_o add_v of_o unwritten_a tradition_n determination_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o fancy_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n therefore_o prevail_a against_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v easy_o to_o be_v infer_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n argument_n 69_o here_o we_o will_v also_o add_v the_o testimony_n of_o bristol_n a_o man_n as_o the_o adversary_n imagine_v well_o see_v in_o motive_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n he_o motive_n he_o bristowe_v motive_n commend_v that_o for_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v catholic_a and_o apostolic_a and_o which_o abhor_v all_o novelty_n heresy_n and_o
immunitat_fw-la in_o 6._o nos_fw-la iustitiam_fw-la nostram_fw-la say_v he_o &_o ecclesiae_fw-la sponsae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la nolentes_fw-la negligere_fw-la argument_n 90_o the_o ancient_a father_n never_o call_v the_o pope_n universal_a bishop_n for_o 32._o for_o lib._n 4._o ep_n 32._o gregory_n the_o first_o do_v much_o mislike_n that_o title_n and_o call_v it_o sacrilegious_a and_o profane_a and_o a_o certain_a council_n of_o africa_n cite_v by_o gratiam_fw-la do_v 99_o c._n primaesedis_fw-la import_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v universal_a but_o now_o every_o lousy_a friar_n make_v pope_n will_v be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n and_o the_o papist_n dare_v not_o deny_v he_o this_o title_n argument_n 91_o ancient_a christian_n never_o call_v the_o pope_n god_n nor_o supremum_fw-la numen_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la but_o the_o canoniste_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o call_v he_o and_o honour_v he_o as_o god_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o chapter_n satis_fw-la do_v 96._o and_o by_o augustine_n steuchus_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr donat_fw-la constantini_n and_o stapleton_n in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a before_o his_o book_n entitle_v doctrinalia_fw-la principia_fw-la call_v he_o supremum_fw-la numen_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la that_o be_v the_o sovereign_a god_n of_o the_o world_n argument_n 92_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v by_o the_o law_n of_o counsel_n and_o christian_a emperor_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o counsel_n and_o law_n of_o justinian_o code_n it_o appear_v also_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o his_o son_n the_o church_n be_v govern_v for_o external_a matter_n by_o law_n of_o prince_n but_o now_o the_o pope_n exclude_v both_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n and_o take_v on_o they_o the_o sole_a government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n argument_n 93_o in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n it_o be_v hold_v that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n the_o same_o also_o appear_v for_o that_o diverse_a pope_n have_v answer_v and_o some_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o counsel_n but_o now_o the_o papist_n hold_v contrary_a and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n neither_o do_v they_o allow_v any_o counsel_n to_o be_v authentical_a but_o such_o as_o be_v call_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n argument_n 94_o the_o apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n be_v subject_a to_o emperor_n &_o prince_n and_o pay_v tribute_n unto_o they_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n teach_v all_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n but_o now_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o all_o prince_n and_o king_n whatsoever_o papa_n est_fw-la dominus_fw-la dominantium_fw-la say_v pendent_fw-la say_v in_o c._n ecclesia_fw-la ut_fw-la light_fw-la pendent_fw-la baldus_n &_o ius_fw-la regis_fw-la regum_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o suos_fw-la subditos_fw-la and_o 5._o and_o de_fw-fr pontific_a rom._n lib._n 5._o bellarmine_n hold_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o take_v their_o crown_n from_o they_o argument_n 95_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n in_o ancient_a time_n exhort_v subject_n to_o obedience_n now_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a have_v exhort_v subject_n to_o rebellion_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o execrable_a bull_n against_o henry_n the_o 8._o king_n of_o england_n and_o his_o daughter_n elizabeth_n now_o reign_v against_o henry_n the_o 3._o of_o france_n and_o against_o diverse_a emperor_n argument_n 96_o in_o ancient_a time_n bishop_n speak_v reverent_o of_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o in_o the_o 83._o the_o c._n 83._o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o censure_n of_o deposition_n be_v inflict_v upon_o such_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o utter_v word_n of_o reproach_n against_o prince_n but_o now_o the_o pope_n rail_v against_o prince_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o their_o wicked_a bull_n and_o when_o rail_n will_v not_o serve_v by_o assassin_n and_o murderer_n hire_v and_o apo_v they_o seek_v to_o cut_v their_o throat_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o fact_n of_o james_n clement_n that_o murder_v henry_n the_o 3._o chastell_n that_o assault_v henry_n the_o 4._o of_o france_n and_o diverse_a assassin_n hire_v to_o kill_v our_o noble_a queen_n argument_n 97_o before_o gregory_n the_o fir_v time_n the_o pope_n make_v no_o bishop_n either_o in_o england_n or_o france_n or_o germany_n or_o africa_n or_o asia_n but_o all_o nation_n and_o province_n be_v free_a from_o his_o usurpation_n neither_o do_v any_o bishop_n swear_v fealty_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o now_o all_o this_o be_v quite_o change_v and_o the_o pope_n claim_v a_o general_a power_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n over_o the_o world_n and_o make_v they_o iurtiurando_fw-la they_o c._n ego_fw-la n._n de_fw-fr iurtiurando_fw-la swear_v fealty_n unto_o he_o as_o to_o their_o sovereign_n argument_n 98_o in_o s._n cyprian_n an_o augustine_n time_n the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n will_v suffer_v no_o appeal_n to_o be_v make_v to_o rome_n now_o bellar._n dispute_v that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o the_o pope_n right_a to_o hear_v appeal_n out_o of_o all_o the_o world_n argument_n 99_o now_o also_o the_o papist_n make_v the_o pope_n supreme_a judge_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o ancient_a church_n n●uer_o imagine_v that_o such_o matter_n can_v be_v decide_v without_o a_o council_n argument_n 100_o the_o pope_n now_o ob_v now_o c._n unam_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v challenge_v both_o sword_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n teach_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v that_o the_o weapon_n of_o his_o warfare_n be_v not_o carnal_a the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n certes_o never_o use_v sword_n nor_o soldier_n but_o sincere_o teach_v the_o gospel_n argument_n 101_o until_o boniface_n the_o nine_o his_o time_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v either_o under_o the_o emperor_n or_o under_o her_o own_o magistrate_n as_o schism_n as_o lib._n 2._o the_o schism_n theodoric_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la testify_v be_v it_o not_o then_o strange_a that_o the_o emperor_n will_v suffer_v his_o imperial_a state_n and_o empire_n to_o be_v hold_v from_o he_o which_o be_v so_o late_o usurp_v and_o by_o fraud_n intercept_v by_o the_o pope_n argument_n 102_o it_o be_v not_o long_o since_o the_o pope_n begin_v to_o wear_v a_o triple_a crown_n and_o to_o be_v bear_v on_o man_n shoulder_n and_o to_o tread_v on_o prince_n neck_n and_o to_o make_v other_o to_o kiss_v his_o pantofle_n let_v robert_n parson_n show_n that_o this_o be_v do_v before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o celestine_n the_o three_o argument_n 103_o neither_o be_v it_o many_o hundred_o year_n since_o the_o pope_n challenge_v annates_fw-la and_o take_v money_n of_o archbishop_n for_o their_o palles_fw-la argument_n 104_o the_o pope_n provision_n reservation_n translation_n and_o other_o extraordinary_a dispensation_n be_v unheard_a of_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n argument_n 105_o final_o whether_o we_o respect_v the_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n or_o the_o doctrine_n and_o ceremony_n concern_v sacrament_n prayer_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n or_o the_o government_n and_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n chamber_n chancery_n and_o consistory_n we_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o so_o much_o as_o we_o reject_v in_o this_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o novelty_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v no_o true_a catholic_n nor_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n if_o they_o believe_v the_o pope_n decretal_n and_o his_o school_n divinity_n if_o false_a teacher_n as_o they_o secret_o broach_v erroneous_a doctrine_n so_o will_v open_o manifest_v their_o malicious_a and_o wicked_a nature_n we_o shall_v not_o need_v so_o watchful_o to_o look_v to_o their_o proceed_n nor_o so_o earnest_o to_o exhort_v all_o christian_n to_o beware_v of_o their_o deceit_n and_o enticement_n but_o see_v like_o wolf_n in_o shéep_n clothe_v they_o come_v abroad_o with_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o catholic_a religion_n and_o abuse_v simple_a people_n i_o think_v it_o very_o necessary_a to_o take_v this_o mask_n from_o their_o false_a visage_n and_o to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v wolvish_a papist_n and_o not_o christ_n sheep_n or_o true_a catholic_n the_o which_o that_o we_o may_v with_o all_o plainness_n and_o sincerity_n perform_v we_o will_v first_o declare_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o profess_v in_o our_o creed_n and_o next_o what_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o every_o christian_a be_v to_o embrace_v and_o with_o all_o constancy_n to_o maintain_v the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o be_v the_o universal_a society_n of_o god_n saint_n and_o it_o comprehend_v all_o the_o faithful_a from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n this_o catholic_a church_n say_v s._n 56._o s._n in_o psal_n 56._o augustine_n be_v
spread_v throughout_o the_o world_n and_o contain_v not_o only_o those_o that_o now_o live_v but_o those_o also_o that_o be_v past_a and_o be_v yet_o to_o come_v the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n which_o the_o apostle_n first_o teach_v and_o which_o all_o true_a christian_n both_o have_v hold_v and_o do_v hold_v and_o shall_v hold_v to_o the_o world_n end_n in_o this_o catholic_a church_n say_v 3._o say_v de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 3._o vincentius_n lirinensis_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n for_o that_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o catholic_a he_o 34._o he_o de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 34._o teach_v we_o also_o that_o the_o property_n of_o catholic_n be_v to_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o they_o and_o leave_v with_o they_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o to_o avoid_v profane_a novelty_n final_o he_o determine_v that_o those_o only_o be_v true_o and_o right_o call_v catholic_n which_o only_o believe_v and_o hold_v that_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o old_a time_n do_v universal_o hold_v saint_n 5._o saint_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n c._n 5._o augustine_n do_v take_v catholic_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o christian_n and_o true_a believer_n which_o maintain_v the_o sincere_a faith_n and_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v right_a apud_fw-la eos_fw-la solos_fw-la say_v he_o quaerenda_fw-la est_fw-la religio_fw-la qui_fw-la christiani_n catholici_fw-la vel_fw-la orthodoxi_fw-la nominantur_fw-la he_o do_v also_o oppose_v catholic_n against_o heretic_n 95._o heretic_n epist_n 81._o ad_fw-la monach_n palaest_a &_o epist_n 95._o leo_n say_v also_o that_o there_o be_v one_o true_a only_o perfect_a and_o inviolable_a faith_n whereto_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v and_o from_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v take_v if_o then_o the_o papist_n be_v heretic_n and_o no_o true_a beléever_n then_o be_v they_o no_o catholic_n if_o they_o hold_v a_o faith_n ground_v upon_o private_a opinion_n of_o man_n and_o not_o always_o nor_o universal_o hold_v then_o do_v they_o not_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o that_o they_o hold_v diverse_a heresy_n and_o false_a opinion_n shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v that_o they_o hold_v many_o new_a point_n altogether_o unknowen_a in_o ancient_a time_n and_o when_o the_o gospel_n begin_v first_o to_o be_v preach_v we_o have_v already_o prove_v and_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o last_o discourse_n catholic_a discourse_n that_o papist_n hold_v point_n of_o doctrine_n not_o catholic_a it_o rest_v then_o now_o that_o i_o here_o declare_v that_o the_o papist_n maintain_v diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n never_o general_o hold_v of_o all_o christian_n nor_o universal_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o may_v appear_v first_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n next_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n that_o concern_v both_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n three_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n four_o by_o their_o faith_n concern_v prayer_n and_o the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n fift_o by_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v repentance_n ordination_n of_o minister_n marriage_n alm_n and_o fast_v and_o final_o by_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n and_o the_o government_n of_o it_o argument_n 1_o concern_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n they_o teach_v first_o that_o scripture_n be_v a_o 12._o a_o bellar._n lib._n 4._o the_o ver●_n dei_fw-la c._n 12._o unperfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o and_o eureux_fw-fr and_o bish_n of_o eureux_fw-fr some_o of_o they_o have_v not_o fear_v to_o write_v book_n of_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o 3._o the_o 2._o tim._n 3._o apostle_n say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o true_a catholic_n always_o hold_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n both_o for_o faith_n and_o manner_n saint_n 9_o saint_n lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n chr._n c._n 9_o augustine_n say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_o belong_v to_o faith_n or_o manner_n be_v contain_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n argument_n 2_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o allow_v the_o scripture_n to_o contain_v all_o that_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o be_v now_o to_o follow_v for_o albeit_o they_o do_v not_o in_o express_a term_n say_v so_o much_o yet_o it_o be_v necessary_o infer_v of_o their_o doctrine_n where_o they_o dei_fw-la they_o bellar._n de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la teach_v that_o we_o have_v one_o word_n of_o god_n write_v and_o another_o unwritten_a and_o trid._n and_o sess_n 4._o council_n trid._n determine_v that_o we_o be_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o embrace_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n never_o teach_v that_o after_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n once_o perfect_v and_o publish_v we_o have_v a_o word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a which_o be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o equal_a rank_n with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n gent._n scripture_n adverse_a gent._n athanasius_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a and_o divine_a scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o instruct_v we_o in_o all_o truth_n s._n 1._o s._n in_o mich._n 1._o hierome_n call_v the_o scripture_n the_o limit_n or_o bound_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr egressa_fw-la de_fw-fr finibus_fw-la suis_fw-la say_v he_o id_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n sanctis_fw-la what_o say_v 80._o say_v regul_n 80._o basil_n be_v the_o property_n of_o a_o faithful_a man_n forsooth_o to_o believe_v with_o certine_n fullness_n of_o mind_n whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o neither_o to_o reject_v any_o part_n thereof_o nor_o to_o add_v any_o new_a thing_n unto_o they_o saint_n 13._o saint_n lib._n de_fw-fr paradis_fw-la c._n 13._o ambrose_n say_v we_o may_v no_o more_o add_v to_o god_n commandment_n than_o take_v from_o they_o and_o s._n tractat_fw-la s._n in_o joan._n tractat_fw-la augustine_n electa_fw-la sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la scriberentur_fw-la quae_fw-la saluti_fw-la credentium_fw-la sufficere_fw-la videbantur_fw-la that_o be_v those_o thing_n be_v choose_v out_o and_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v write_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o albeit_o the_o father_n mention_n tradition_n which_o be_v sometime_o unwritten_a yet_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a they_o signify_v that_o now_o they_o be_v write_v si_fw-mi aut_fw-la in_o evangelio_fw-la praecipitur_fw-la say_v pompeium_n say_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la pompeium_n cyprian_n aut_fw-la in_o apostolorum_fw-la epistolis_fw-la aut_fw-la actibus_fw-la continetur_fw-la obseruetur_fw-la divina_fw-la haec_fw-la &_o sancta_fw-la traditio_fw-la he_o signify_v that_o no_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v unless_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n argument_n 3_o the_o papist_n also_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o he_o see_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n est_fw-la petri_n sedes_fw-la say_v rom._n say_v in_o praefat_fw-la ante_fw-la lib._n the_o pontiff_a rom._n bellarmine_n lapis_fw-la probatus_fw-la angularis_fw-la preciosus_fw-la in_fw-la fundamento_fw-la fundatus_fw-la these_o word_n also_o he_o apply_v to_o the_o pope_n who_o he_o call_v christ_n vicar_n in_o another_o 31._o another_o lib._n 2._o depont_n rom._n c._n 31._o place_n he_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o sanders_n in_o his_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n dispute_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o rock_n be_v not_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n a_o weak_a building_n that_o in_o every_o vacation_n be_v without_o foundation_n and_o rely_v whole_o upon_o one_o man_n true_a catholic_n certes_o never_o apply_v the_o word_n of_o isay_n ch_n 8_o &_o 28._o to_o the_o pope_n nor_o think_v he_o to_o be_v a_o approve_a stone_n or_o corner_n stone_n or_o a_o precious_a stone_n lay_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o 3._o the_o 1._o cor._n 3._o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v that_o be_v christ_n jesus_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o 2._o he_o ephes_n 2._o say_v that_o the_o church_n and_o citizen_n of_o saint_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n with_o he_o also_o consent_v all_o the_o company_n of_o true_a catholic_n argument_n 4_o stapleton_n in_o plain_a term_n deni_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o his_o religion_n aliud_fw-la hodie_fw-la say_v he_o doctrine_n he_o in_o praefat_fw-la ante_fw-la relect_a princip_n doctrine_n christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la habemus_fw-la and_o afterward_o ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la evangelicis_fw-la &_o apostolicis_fw-la aliud_fw-la the_o same_o doctrine_n same_o in_o analysi_fw-la ante_fw-la
argument_n 10_o the_o romanist_n haeret_fw-la romanist_n c._n ad_fw-la abolendam_fw-la de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la adjudge_v all_o to_o be_v heretic_n which_o teach_v and_o hold_v otherwise_o of_o the_o sacrament_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n determine_v and_o hold_v and_o common_o they_o condemn_v all_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o pope_n determination_n concern_v faith_n but_o catholic_n make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o squire_n of_o our_o faith_n our_o 28._o our_o matth._n 28._o saviour_n christ_n give_v his_o apostle_n in_o charge_n to_o teach_v what_o he_o have_v command_v they_o the_o apostle_n likewise_o pronounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o shall_v teach_v otherwise_o than_o the_o galatian_n have_v receive_v so_o it_o appear_v that_o not_o those_o that_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o such_o as_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n yea_o albeit_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v condemn_v and_o accurse_a argument_n 11_o the_o romanist_n do_v aswell_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o 4._o upon_o council_n trid._n sess_v 4._o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n so_o the_o papist_n must_v aswell_o receive_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o legend_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o aswell_o must_v they_o believe_v the_o wound_n of_o s._n francis_n as_o christ_n his_o passion_n and_o the_o miracle_n of_o s._n dominike_n and_o other_o brave_a romish_a saint_n as_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o these_o as_o they_o hold_v be_v tradition_n and_o the_o wound_n of_o s._n francis_n be_v confirm_v by_o diverse_a decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n to_o this_o effect_n write_v 15._o write_v c._n sancta_fw-la do_v 15._o gelasius_n and_o say_v gesta_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la martyrum_fw-la recipimus_fw-la but_o true_a catholic_n have_v more_o certain_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o will_v be_v much_o ashamed_a to_o believe_v such_o fable_n nay_o some_o of_o the_o papist_n have_v much_o mislike_v these_o fabulous_a legend_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o dante_n a_o italian_a poet_n cant._n 29._o and_o laurence_n valla_n in_o his_o treatise_n contra_fw-la donationem_fw-la constantini_n argument_n 12_o the_o papist_n allow_v the_o legend_n of_o s._n george_n s._n christopher_n s._n catherine_n abgarus_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n head_n and_o diverse_a such_o like_a as_o contain_v old_a tradition_n but_o true_a catholic_n will_v not_o allow_v any_o such_o fable_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n nay_o gratian_n himself_o under_o the_o name_n of_o 15._o of_o c._n sancta_fw-la do_v 15._o gelasius_n do_v condemn_v the_o legend_n of_o george_n of_o cyricus_n and_o julitta_n abgarus_n of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o such_o like_a argument_n 13_o alij_fw-la nunc_fw-la à_fw-la christo_fw-la say_v doctrine_n say_v in_o praefat_fw-la in_o relect_v princip_n doctrine_n stapleton_n eorúmue_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praedicatio_fw-la determinatio_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la apud_fw-la i_o locum_fw-la habebunt_fw-la that_o be_v other_o beside_o christ_n together_o with_o their_o doctrine_n preach_v and_o determination_n shall_v be_v account_v of_o i_o as_o a_o foundation_n the_o rest_n also_o beléeve_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o err_v in_o their_o determination_n concern_v faith_n must_v needs_o rest_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o true_a catholic_n build_v their_o say_v only_o upon_o christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n argument_n 14_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o all_o true_a catholic_n keep_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a father_n without_o addition_n and_o alteration_n and_o avoid_v all_o profane_a novelty_n the_o 1_o the_o galat._n 1_o apostle_n pronounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o teach_v any_o other_o gospel_n than_o that_o which_o he_o have_v teach_v catholicorum_n hoc_fw-la ferè_fw-la proprium_fw-la say_v 34._o say_v adverse_a hare_n c._n 34._o vincentius_n deposita_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la &_o commissa_fw-la seruare_fw-la damnare_fw-la prophanas_fw-la novitates_fw-la &_o sicut_fw-la dixit_fw-la &_o iterum_fw-la dixit_fw-la apostolus_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la annunciaverit_n praeterquam_fw-la quod_fw-la acceptum_fw-la est_fw-la anathematizare_fw-la if_o then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o papist_n have_v alter_v the_o apostolic_a and_o ancient_a father_n faith_n and_o have_v add_v diverse_a point_n of_o new_a doctrine_n unto_o it_o as_o i_o have_v verify_v in_o the_o chapter_n go_v before_o he_o do_v great_o wrong_v the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o call_v they_o catholic_n argument_n 15_o true_a catholic_n believe_v in_o god_n only_o i'faith_o say_v the_o 10._o the_o rom._n 10._o apostle_n be_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 7._o god_n de_n divin_v non_fw-la inib._fw-la c._n 7._o dionyse_n say_v that_o faith_n have_v for_o his_o object_n the_o most_o pure_a and_o ever_o be_v truth_n and_o every_o catholic_a rehearse_v his_o belief_n say_v he_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o papist_n after_o a_o sort_n believe_v in_o the_o virgin_n mary_n in_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o pray_v and_o confess_v their_o sin_n unto_o they_o for_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o they_o how_o do_v they_o call_v upon_o they_o see_v the_o 10._o the_o rom._n 10._o apostle_n say_v how_o shall_v they_o call_v on_o he_o on_o who_o they_o have_v not_o believe_v and_o why_o do_v they_o confess_v their_o sin_n unto_o they_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o they_o do_v understand_v the_o secret_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o know_v that_o their_o confession_n be_v sincere_a and_o true_a if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o saint_n yet_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o romish_a church_n gracorum_n church_n in_o o●usc_n contra_fw-la errores_fw-la gracorum_n thomas_n aquinas_n say_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la pertinct_n say_v he_o inhaerere_fw-la determinationi_fw-la pontificis_fw-la fummi_fw-la in_o his_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la fidei_fw-la imò_fw-la &_o in_o his_o quae_fw-la spectant_fw-la ad_fw-la bonos_fw-es more_o be_v with_o he_o also_o concur_v fides_fw-la concur_v summa_fw-la silu_a in_o verb._n fides_fw-la silvester_n prierius_n he_o say_v also_o further_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v whatsoever_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la pertinent_a omne_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la argument_n 16_o true_a catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n jesus_n as_o he_o be_v true_a god_n so_o be_v he_o also_o true_a man_n and_o have_v a_o body_n like_a to_o we_o in_o height_n breadth_n and_o thickness_n and_o that_o he_o fill_v the_o place_n where_o his_o body_n be_v as_o do_v our_o body_n we_o must_v believe_v say_v s._n divinitatis_fw-la s._n de_fw-fr essentia_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la augustine_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o deity_n be_v invisible_a incorporeal_a and_o incircumscriptible_a but_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n that_o he_o be_v visible_a corporeal_a and_o local_a 4._o local_a contr._n eutychem_n lib._n 4._o c._n 4._o vigilius_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v contain_v in_o a_o place_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n illud_fw-la corpus_fw-la say_v 2._o say_v dialog_n 2._o theodoret_n habet_fw-la priorem_fw-la formam_fw-la &_o figuram_fw-la &_o circumscriptionem_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la semel_fw-la dicam_fw-la corporis_fw-la substantiam_fw-la so_o likewise_o say_v 5._o say_v ad_fw-la thrasymund_n lib._n 2._o c._n 5._o fulgentius_n si_fw-mi verum_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la loco_fw-la potest_fw-la utique_fw-la contineri_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n do_v assign_v to_o christ_n such_o a_o body_n as_o be_v neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a nor_o circumscriptible_a in_o the_o sacrament_n nor_o have_v the_o dimension_n of_o height_n breadth_n and_o depth_n such_o as_o a_o man_n body_n by_o nature_n have_v nor_o be_v continue_v to_o itself_o as_o all_o body_n be_v but_o want_v all_o the_o property_n of_o a_o true_a body_n then_o be_v the_o papist_n neither_o catholic_n nor_o christian_n for_o how_o can_v they_o be_v either_o that_o err_v in_o thing_n so_o material_a argument_n 17_o every_o catholic_a christian_a beléeve_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n true_a body_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o there_o remain_v and_o shall_v remain_v until_o his_o come_n again_o he_o 16._o he_o john_n 16._o tell_v his_o disciple_n before_o his_o passion_n that_o he_o must_v leave_v the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n he_o say_v also_o in_o another_o 12._o another_o john_n 12._o place_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o always_o have_v he_o with_o they_o in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o act_n we_o read_v that_o his_o
there_o have_v be_v some_o difference_n between_o private_a person_n about_o ceremony_n and_o government_n and_o that_o without_o disagréement_n in_o religion_n yet_o now_o all_o that_o quarrel_n to_o the_o great_a grief_n of_o owlyglasse_n and_o his_o consort_n be_v end_v and_o all_o godly_a christian_n joint_o concur_v to_o the_o repress_v of_o the_o seditious_a massepriest_n and_o their_o adherent_n that_o by_o faction_n and_o heresy_n seek_v to_o undermine_v both_o the_o church_n and_o state_n in_o this_o observation_n he_o go_v about_o also_o to_o prove_v that_o i_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o allow_v the_o doctrine_n establish_v in_o this_o church_n of_o england_n but_o as_o in_o the_o rest_n so_o in_o this_o owlyglasse_n do_v but_o trifle_n i_o do_v hold_v i_o confess_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a but_o that_o diverse_a may_v and_o have_v be_v save_v without_o it_o especial_o where_o there_o be_v no_o contempt_n commit_v in_o procure_v it_o further_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o woman_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o administer_v baptism_n and_o do_v advice_n in_o case_n of_o extremity_n all_o christian_n to_o procure_v the_o minister_n presence_n three_o i_o do_v utter_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n concern_v their_o limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la four_o i_o do_v much_o mislike_v their_o superstitious_a stationary_a obambulation_n about_o the_o limit_n of_o parish_n for_o the_o blessing_n of_o new_a corn_n and_o their_o superstitious_a litany_n and_o ceremony_n use_v in_o the_o fame_n five_o i_o deny_v that_o ever_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v any_o precept_n or_o canon_n to_o forbid_v marriage_n on_o such_o day_n and_o in_o such_o sort_n and_o for_o such_o respect_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v practice_v six_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o luther_n opinion_n absolute_o consider_v in_o itself_o be_v not_o a_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n especial_o if_o we_o give_v his_o word_n a_o favourable_a construction_n final_o i_o account_n none_o to_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o professor_n that_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o sin_n and_o live_v not_o according_a to_o their_o profession_n but_o what_o of_o all_o this_o do_v i_o therefore_o teach_v contrary_a to_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n maintain_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o owlyglasse_n my_o good_a friend_n will_v insinuate_v but_o his_o proof_n be_v simple_a and_o his_o assertion_n most_o false_a he_o say_v page_n 111._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n teach_v that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o the_o book_n which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o which_o he_o can_v bring_v one_o word_n to_o prove_v his_o say_n do_v convince_v he_o both_o of_o lie_v and_o impudency_n second_o he_o affirm_v that_o to_o deny_v woman_n baptism_n be_v contrary_a to_o religion_n establish_v but_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o his_o religion_n to_o lie_v and_o face_n out_o lie_v most_o impudent_o three_o to_o prove_v that_o our_o church_n beléeve_v limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la he_o shall_v have_v allege_v our_o confession_n and_o not_o a_o certain_a verset_fw-la of_o the_o créede_v in_o meet_a beside_o that_o in_o that_o verset_fw-la nothing_o be_v say_v but_o that_o christ_n illuminate_v those_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o limbus_fw-la patrum_fw-la a_o place_n that_o can_v be_v illuminate_v as_o papist_n hold_v further_o that_o verset_fw-la may_v be_v rather_o a_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o song_n of_o zacharie_n luke_n 2._o of_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o of_o the_o like_a word_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n chap._n 9_o then_o a_o assertion_n of_o limbus_fw-la pactum_fw-la four_o the_o papist_n in_o their_o perambulation_n of_o parish_n use_v to_o bless_v or_o rather_o to_o exorcise_v corn_n and_o to_o say_v most_o wicked_a litanye_n they_o use_v also_o diverse_a superstitious_a ceremony_n which_o unless_o owlyglasse_n prove_v to_o be_v allow_v by_o our_o church_n he_o will_v prove_v himself_o a_o cog_a companion_n five_o he_o talk_v of_o prohibition_n of_o the_o solemnisation_n of_o marriage_n at_o certain_a time_n but_o he_o allege_v neither_o law_n nor_o record_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o church_n allow_v either_o the_o doctrine_n or_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o romish_a congregation_n in_o this_o point_n and_o there_o whither_o he_o send_v we_o we_o find_v nothing_o but_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o almanac_n six_o albeit_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v not_o hold_v luther_n real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o can_v the_o detractor_n show_v but_o that_o his_o opinion_n may_v be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o christian_a faith_n if_o a_o man_n will_v not_o urge_v those_o point_n that_o follow_v of_o that_o doctrine_n too_o severe_o and_o further_a percase_o then_o at_o the_o first_o luther_n himself_o allow_v they_o if_o a_o man_n do_v gather_v what_o do_v follow_v of_o it_o then_o be_v the_o doctrine_n dangerous_a as_o i_o and_o other_o confess_v final_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o i_o have_v deliver_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n where_o i_o affirm_v that_o good_a life_n be_v as_o well_o require_v in_o a_o true_a professor_n as_o true_a faith_n why_o then_o be_v this_o point_n touch_v in_o this_o place_n do_v it_o grieve_v he_o that_o i_o touch_v the_o filthy_a sodomitical_a priest_n and_o friar_n and_o shut_v that_o abominable_a generation_n out_o of_o god_n church_n it_o seem_v so_o and_o therefore_o to_o requite_v i_o he_o say_v that_o this_o doctrine_n may_v touch_v i_o for_o that_o i_o have_v falsify_v and_o malicious_o corrupt_v the_o father_n but_o if_o i_o have_v clear_v myself_o of_o all_o those_o matter_n that_o he_o have_v lay_v to_o my_o charge_n i_o hope_v the_o vanity_n of_o his_o collection_n will_v manifest_o appear_v to_o all_o indifferent_a man_n but_o he_o poor_a idiot_n appear_v not_o but_o see_v the_o romish_a church_n and_o diverse_a of_o her_o principal_a pillar_n to_o be_v charge_v with_o notorious_a lie_n and_o falsification_n pass_v away_o in_o silence_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v one_o word_n nay_o he_o leave_v his_o client_n in_o the_o brier_n and_o signify_v for_o aught_o he_o can_v do_v they_o must_v plead_v for_o themselves_o wherefore_o to_o leave_v off_o further_o to_o urge_v this_o distress_a follow_v that_o be_v able_a to_o say_v nothing_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o they_o who_o he_o do_v principal_o favour_n i_o may_v well_o conclude_v see_v the_o argument_n which_o i_o bring_v in_o my_o challenge_n stand_v immooveable_a and_o the_o detectors_n exception_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v vain_a and_o frivolous_a first_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n second_o that_o the_o religion_n of_o papist_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o catholic_a three_o that_o all_o papist_n maintain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n be_v heretic_n four_o that_o such_o as_o embrace_v popish_a religion_n be_v idolater_n five_o that_o all_o the_o pope_n adherent_n and_o agent_n that_o have_v suffer_v for_o his_o cause_n in_o england_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v no_o better_o then_o disloyal_a traitor_n and_o not_o as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o martyr_n final_o that_o my_o adversary_n by_o his_o frivolous_a objection_n have_v much_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v our_o cause_n against_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o object_v any_o one_o thing_n of_o moment_n and_o justify_v my_o allegation_n be_v not_o able_a to_o take_v any_o just_a exception_n against_o any_o thing_n say_v by_o i_o nor_o to_o object_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o full_o answer_v chap._n four_o of_o diverse_a falsity_n commit_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o our_o adversary_n have_v well_o remember_v his_o promise_n he_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o have_v convince_v i_o of_o untruth_n corruption_n contradiction_n and_o falsification_n according_a to_o the_o title_n of_o his_o pamphlet_n but_o also_o of_o maliciousness_n and_o wilfulness_n for_o so_o he_o vaunt_v he_o will_n i_o challenge_v the_o challenger_n say_v he_o of_o many_o malicious_a untruth_n cap._n 1._o pag._n 8._o and_o many_o palpable_a and_o wilful_a falsification_n but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o performance_n of_o corruption_n he_o say_v nothing_o contradiction_n he_o touch_v slender_o untruth_n and_o falsification_n he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n fasten_v upon_o i_o the_o quality_n of_o maliciousness_n and_o wilfulness_n be_v a_o matter_n purpose_v and_o full_o promise_v he_o utter_o forget_v in_o the_o rest_n how_o poor_o he_o have_v demean_v himself_o by_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o whole_a dispute_n it_o will_v appear_v but_o suppose_v i_o have_v either_o mistake_v a_o report_n misalleadge_v a_o place_n yet_o
nothing_o more_o for_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o historiographer_n that_o do_v mention_v any_o such_o matter_n nay_o history_n report_n that_o otho_n depose_v this_o john_n and_o cause_v another_o to_o be_v place_v in_o his_o seat_n so_o far_o be_v he_o from_o swear_v fealty_n to_o he_o beside_o that_o not_o any_o man_n of_o credit_n ever_o write_v that_o the_o emperor_n hold_v his_o crown_n in_o fealty_n of_o the_o pope_n bellarmine_n albeit_o he_o wish_v well_o to_o the_o pope_n yet_o do_v he_o not_o hold_v or_o believe_v any_o such_o matter_n or_o at_o least_o he_o dare_v not_o speak_v or_o write_v so_o much_o three_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o otho_n and_o his_o successor_n claim_v jurisdiction_n in_o rome_n and_o the_o territory_n adjoin_v long_o after_o this_o suppose_a decretale_n therefore_o unlike_o it_o be_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v as_o be_v here_o pretend_a forswear_v it_o final_o the_o frame_n of_o the_o oath_n be_v most_o ridiculous_a and_o the_o stile_n most_o brutish_a the_o emperor_n call_v the_o pope_n dominum_fw-la and_o say_v tibi_fw-la domino_fw-la joanni_fw-la papae_fw-la ego_fw-la rex_fw-la otho_fw-la promittere_fw-la &_o iurare_fw-la facere_fw-la which_o be_v a_o most_o absurd_a kind_n of_o speech_n for_o he_o that_o swear_v himself_o take_v his_o oath_n direct_o and_o make_v not_o other_o only_o to_o swear_v or_o promise_v but_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v falsity_n to_o exhibit_v or_o use_v any_o false_a instrument_n or_o to_o corrupt_v or_o falsify_v any_o public_a or_o private_a writing_n by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o paulus_fw-la respondit_fw-la say_v the_o law_n legis_fw-la corneliae_fw-la poenateneri_fw-la l._n instrumentorum_fw-la ff_n ad_fw-la l._n cornel_n de_fw-fr falsie_n qui_fw-la etiam_fw-la extra_fw-la testamenta_fw-la ceterus_fw-la falsa_fw-la signassent_v sed_fw-la et_fw-la ceteros_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o rationibus_fw-la tabulis_fw-la literis_fw-la publicis_fw-la aliave_v qua_fw-la re_fw-mi sive_fw-la consignatione_fw-la falsum_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la vel_fw-la ut_fw-la verum_fw-la non_fw-la appareat_fw-la quid_fw-la celaverunt_fw-la surripuerunt_fw-la subiecerunt_fw-la resignaverunt_fw-la falsification_n 25_o the_o epistle_n ascribe_v to_o clement_n anacle_n tus_fw-la euaristus_n alexander_n sixtus_n telesphorus_n hyginus_n pius_fw-la victor_n and_o other_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v nothing_o but_o mere_a forgerye_n for_o first_o seeing_z they_o live_v in_o time_n when_o latin_a be_v most_o pure_o speak_v it_o be_v not_o likely_a but_o their_o epistle_n shall_v be_v good_a latin_a but_o these_o suppose_a epistle_n be_v most_o barbarous_a and_o gothical_a and_o very_o unlike_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n lactantius_n and_o other_o father_n second_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o live_v in_o ancient_a time_n those_o bishop_n shall_v speak_v as_o the_o italian_n speak_v about_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n three_o see_v there_o be_v such_o difference_n of_o stile_n in_o diverse_a writer_n that_o no_o two_o or_o three_o write_v all_o alike_o it_o be_v not_o like_a if_o all_o these_o epistle_n have_v be_v write_v by_o the_o man_n who_o name_n they_o carry_v that_o the_o stile_n of_o all_o shall_v be_v like_a four_o if_o they_o be_v write_v by_o diverse_a how_o happen_v it_o that_o in_o diverse_a epistle_n diverse_a writer_n use_v the_o same_o word_n phrase_n and_o sentence_n again_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o some_o of_o they_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o hieromes_n traslation_n that_o be_v make_v long_o after_o fifty_o neither_o bellarmine_n nor_o baronius_n dare_v maintain_v that_o all_o these_o epistle_n be_v authentical_a 6._o the_o romanistes_n themselves_o do_v not_o give_v any_o credit_n to_o these_o epistle_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o linus_n succeed_v peter_n immediate_o but_o clement_a epistle_n 1._o tell_v contrary_a that_o he_o do_v succeed_v peter_n be_v ordain_v by_o peter_n himself_o final_o they_o contain_v some_o matter_n disagrée_v far_o from_o the_o time_n wherein_o they_o write_v and_o other_o very_o impossible_a and_o sometime_o contrary_a to_o authentical_a history_n clement_n epist_n 1._o write_v to_o james_n of_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v dead_a before_o peter_n he_o talk_v of_o send_v of_o bishop_n into_o france_n germany_n and_o italy_n as_o if_o he_o have_v then_o have_v man_n to_o command_v at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o can_v have_v dispose_v of_o thing_n then_o as_o in_o latter_a time_n he_o talk_v of_o a_o form_n and_o face_n of_o government_n which_o then_o be_v not_o usual_a in_o his_o second_o epistle_n most_o arrogant_o he_o take_v on_o he_o to_o instruct_v james_n the_o apostle_n which_o have_v his_o instruction_n from_o christ_n jesus_n qualiter_fw-la tenere_fw-la de_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la debemus_fw-la that_o be_v of_o the_o dung_n of_o mouse_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o call_v the_o lord_n portion_n say_v he_o te_fw-la ex_fw-la ordine_fw-la nos_fw-la decet_fw-la instruere_fw-la and_o then_o full_a wise_o he_o talk_v de_fw-la murium_fw-la stercore_fw-la inter_fw-la fragmenta_fw-la dominicae_fw-la portionis_fw-la anacletus_fw-la in_o his_o first_o epistle_n will_v have_v all_o hard_a question_n refer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o the_o true_a anacletus_fw-la will_v have_v so_o write_v that_o die_v before_o john_n the_o apostle_n who_o be_v better_o able_a to_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n then_o anacletus_fw-la in_o his_o second_o epistle_n he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v the_o 72._o disciple_n which_o the_o gospel_n show_v we_o to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o three_o epistle_n he_o say_v that_o abilius_n succeed_v mark_n in_o alexandria_n whereas_o anianus_n do_v follow_v mark_n and_o abilius_n follow_v anianus_n he_o say_v also_o that_o cephas_n signify_v a_o head_n in_o gréeke_n the_o same_o man_n deni_v the_o lesser_a order_n under_o priest_n and_o deacons_n to_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n euaristus_n talk_v idle_o of_o ordain_v priest_n without_o title_n and_o consecrate_v of_o church_n and_o stone_n altar_n whereas_o title_n and_o church_n begin_v not_o before_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o stone_n altar_n be_v not_o build_v for_o many_o year_n after_o sixtus_n begin_v his_o epistle_n thus_o sixtus_n universalis_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la episcopus_fw-la whereas_o this_o title_n be_v by_o gregory_n the_o first_o and_o long_o after_o sixtus_n his_o time_n refuse_v it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o hyginus_n be_v a_o greek_a write_v to_o the_o athenian_n which_o be_v greek_n in_o latin_a which_o notwithstanding_o be_v signify_v by_o his_o epistle_n beside_o that_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o john_n be_v write_v to_o the_o parthian_n calixtus_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n argue_v against_o those_o that_o refuse_v repentance_n to_o those_o that_o have_v fall_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n which_o be_v the_o heresy_n of_o novatus_fw-la that_o rise_v up_o some_o pretty_a while_n after_o his_o time_n pontianus_n in_o his_o epistle_n join_v christ_n and_o peter_n together_o contrary_a to_o the_o stile_n of_o those_o time_n marcellinus_n say_v non_fw-la licet_fw-la imperatori_fw-la epist_n 2._o vel_fw-la cviquam_fw-la pietatem_fw-la custodienti_fw-la aliquid_fw-la contra_fw-la mandata_fw-la divina_fw-la praesumere_fw-la whereby_o he_o signify_v that_o the_o emperor_n then_o profess_a christian_n religion_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n he_o dispute_v against_o the_o arrian_n which_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v of_o one_o substance_n with_o his_o father_n very_o stout_o and_o yet_o in_o his_o time_n the_o heresy_n of_o arrius_n be_v not_o know_v in_o the_o world_n infinite_a other_o exception_n may_v be_v take_v to_o these_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o decretale_a epistle_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o rest_n be_v like_a to_o these_o of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o stamp_n falsification_n 26_o melchiade_n 12._o q._n 1._o c._n futuram_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la tell_v we_o how_o constantine_n be_v christen_v and_o give_v his_o seat_n and_o other_o great_a possession_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o melchiade_n be_v dead_a before_o constantine_n be_v christen_v or_o have_v give_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n this_o act_n therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v forge_v and_o so_o do_v the_o gloss_n confess_v after_o a_o sort_n falsus_fw-la est_fw-la titulus_fw-la say_v the_o gloss_n in_o the_o canon_n set_v out_o by_o gregory_n the_o 13._o which_o show_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n impudent_o use_v false_a title_n falsification_n 27_o next_o to_o decretale_a epistle_n shall_v follow_v the_o falsification_n of_o father_n out_o of_o augustine_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christiana_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 8._o they_o describe_v this_o sentence_n in_o canonicis_fw-la scripture_n ecclesiarum_fw-la catholicarum_fw-la quamplurimum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la
be_v now_o a_o infant_n or_o that_o he_o have_v communicate_v his_o government_n with_o his_o mother_n three_o neither_o do_v peter_n nor_o any_o other_o disciple_n of_o christ_n teach_v or_o maintain_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o worship_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o the_o pope_n authority_n all_o these_o figure_n therefore_o be_v lie_v and_o false_a figure_n falsification_n 7_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la in_o his_o decretal_a epistle_n profire_v before_o baronious_a his_o book_n say_v that_o he_o have_v faithful_o and_o diligent_o report_v the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v the_o true_a fountain_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n speak_v of_o his_o book_n he_o call_v it_o opus_fw-la fideliter_fw-la scriptum_fw-la and_o not_o only_o report_v so_o of_o his_o book_n that_o already_o be_v publish_v but_o of_o those_o that_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o see_v prophesi_v belike_o of_o caesar_n baronius_n his_o future_a work_n perfection_n and_o exploit_n speak_v of_o his_o diligence_n in_o describe_v of_o romish_a tradition_n he_o say_v that_o in_o his_o book_n of_o annales_n apostolicarum_fw-la traditionum_fw-la purissimi_fw-la fontes_fw-la aperiuntur_fw-la but_o this_o be_v a_o notorious_a and_o large_a untruth_n for_o not_o only_o his_o tradition_n be_v fabulous_a but_o his_o discourse_n most_o vain_a and_o false_a be_v ground_v for_o the_o most_o part_n upon_o lie_v legend_n counterfect_a sermon_n and_o oration_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o father_n lewd_a author_n and_o such_o as_o simeon_n metaphrastes_n anastasius_n gratian_n iuo_o theodorus_n studites_n &_o certain_a book_n that_o never_o yet_o see_v light_n and_o baronius_n allow_v this_o epistle_n of_o sixtus_n must_v needs_o prove_v himself_o a_o liar_n falsification_n 8_o the_o year_n and_o precise_a time_n of_o christ_n nativity_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o his_o work_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o if_o he_o fail_v in_o that_o then_o that_o his_o whole_a book_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o lie_n that_o the_o whole_a work_n be_v lay_v upon_o that_o point_n himself_o confess_v haec_fw-la basis_n quaedam_fw-la ac_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la annalium_fw-la esto_fw-la say_v he_o appara●us_fw-la ad_fw-la annal_n eclesiast_n but_o that_o he_o have_v err_v in_o that_o point_n it_o be_v very_o probable_a epiphanius_n in_o panario_fw-la haeres_fw-la 51._o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v bear_v augustus_n and_o silvanus_n be_v consul_n severus_n hist_o lib._n 2._o say_v he_o be_v bear_v when_o sabinus_n and_o ruffinus_n be_v consul_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o rather_o believe_v cassiodorus_n who_o baronius_n follow_v than_o the_o other_o two_o but_o if_o this_o be_v not_o erroneous_a yet_o in_o the_o supputation_n of_o year_n continual_o he_o err_v reduce_v matter_n rather_o to_o the_o false_a tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n then_o to_o the_o truth_n falsification_n 9_o this_o sentence_n which_o he_o place_v in_o the_o front_n of_o his_o book_n in_o petra_fw-la exaltavit_fw-la i_o &_o nunc_fw-la exaltavit_fw-la caput_fw-la meum_fw-la super_fw-la inimi_fw-la choose_fw-la meos_fw-la he_o do_v false_o apply_v to_o the_o romish_a church_n contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o prophet_n psal_n 26._o for_o he_o speak_v of_o himself_o beside_o that_o he_o say_v abscondit_fw-la i_o in_fw-la tabernaculo_fw-la suon_n in_o die_n malorum_fw-la protexit_fw-la i_o in_fw-la abscondito_fw-la tabernaculi_fw-la svi_fw-la that_o be_v he_o have_v hide_v i_o in_o his_o tabernacle_n and_o in_o the_o day_n of_o my_o trouble_n have_v protect_v i_o in_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o his_o tabernacle_n but_o the_o romanistes_n will_v not_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o congregation_n hide_a or_o that_o god_n do_v place_v the_o same_o in_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o his_o tabernacle_n furthermore_o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o himself_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o romish_a church_n for_o it_o be_v not_o god_n that_o have_v advance_v the_o pope_n to_o this_o height_n of_o pride_n nor_o do_v those_o heresy_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n mayntein_v nor_o those_o massacre_n and_o imposture_n which_o she_o work_v proceed_v from_o god_n final_o god_n shall_v destroy_v antichrist_n with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o shall_v not_o exalt_v he_o nor_o suffer_v he_o long_o to_o be_v thus_o exalt_v falsification_n 10_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a or_o catholic_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n to_o be_v holy_a and_o ancient_a pro_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la traditionum_fw-la antiquitate_fw-la say_v he_o ac_fw-la sanctae_fw-la romanae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la potestate_fw-la but_o of_o the_o profaneness_n and_o novelty_n of_o the_o romish_a tradition_n i_o have_v speak_v already_o both_o in_o my_o challenge_n and_o in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la and_o other_o treatise_n against_o bellarmine_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thereby_o every_o man_n may_v convince_v he_o of_o lie_v both_o concern_v the_o holiness_n and_o also_o the_o antiquity_n of_o romish_a tradition_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v catholic_a concern_v faith_n universal_o teach_v i_o have_v declare_v in_o my_o challenge_n to_o be_v most_o false_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v the_o universal_a and_o catholic_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o time_n and_o place_n be_v not_o only_o most_o false_a but_o also_o most_o absurd_a for_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o true_a church_n as_o it_o be_v sometime_o yet_o as_o well_o may_v we_o call_v london_n all_o england_n as_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o catholic_a church_n falsification_n 11_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n most_o impudent_o he_o appli_v these_o word_n of_o jacob_n genes_n 27._o surge_n sede_fw-la &_o comede_fw-la de_fw-la venatione_fw-la mea_fw-la ut_fw-la benedicat_fw-la mihi_fw-la anima_fw-la tua_fw-la to_o himself_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v a_o hunt_n about_o rome_n and_o bring_v sixtus_n quintus_fw-la a_o goat_n or_o some_o like_a venaison_n and_o as_o if_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la be_v a_o prophet_n like_a to_o jacob_n and_o to_o fit_v the_o word_n to_o his_o purpose_n he_o add_v to_o the_o text_n the_o word_n pater_fw-la and_o take_v away_o the_o word_n sede_fw-la and_o say_v surge_n pater_fw-la &_o comede_fw-la de_fw-la venatione_fw-la mea_fw-la ut_fw-la benedicat_fw-la mihi_fw-la anima_fw-la tua_fw-la which_o be_v a_o false_a and_o lewd_a kind_n of_o abuse_v of_o scripture_n falsification_n 12_o concern_v the_o visible_a monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o tell_v if_o not_o a_o visible_a yet_o a_o very_a palpable_a lie_n in_o praefat_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la visibilem_fw-la monarchiam_fw-la say_v he_o à_fw-la christo_fw-la domino_fw-la institutam_fw-la super_fw-la petrum_fw-la fundatam_fw-la ac_fw-la eius_fw-la legitimos_fw-la verosque_fw-la successores_fw-la romanos_fw-la nimirum_fw-la pontifices_fw-la inviolatè_fw-la conseruatam_fw-la etc._n etc._n demonstrabimus_fw-la but_o if_o christ_n have_v appoint_v any_o such_o visible_a monarchy_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o first_o church_n of_o christian_n can_v ever_o see_v it_o again_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o think_v that_o general_a counsel_n will_v have_v make_v law_n if_o there_o have_v be_v a_o general_a monarch_n appoint_v over_o they_o three_o if_o peter_n have_v be_v a_o monarch_n yet_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o visible_a monarchy_n be_v found_v upon_o he_o for_o no_o man_n say_v that_o the_o kingdone_v be_v found_v upon_o the_o king_n neither_o be_v it_o probable_a the_o foundation_n be_v invisible_a that_o the_o building_n shall_v be_v visible_a final_o this_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o his_o legendicall_a fable_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succeed_v peter_n in_o the_o visible_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v if_o this_o ground_n fail_v he_o the_o cardinal_n lie_v in_o every_o page_n of_o his_o annal_n and_o as_o often_o as_o he_o talk_v of_o this_o matter_n but_o that_o neither_o peter_n be_v constitute_v monarch_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v succeed_v in_o any_o such_o fantastical_a monarchy_n i_o have_v at_o large_a prove_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n set_v out_o against_o bellarmine_n some_o four_o or_o or_o five_o year_n sense_n falsification_n 13_o out_o of_o clement_n lib._n storm_n 6._o most_o simple_o and_o false_o he_o affirm_v apparat._n p._n 17._o cod._n antuerp_n that_o as_o the_o jew_n know_v god_n by_o the_o prophet_n so_o god_n do_v separat_fw-la from_o the_o common_a multitude_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o most_o excellent_a of_o the_o philosopher_n and_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o god_n beneficence_n he_o allege_v also_o a_o apocryphal_a text_n out_o of_o paul_n and_o seem_v to_o affirm_v that_o some_o gentile_n do_v know_v christ_n
word_n force_v he_o to_o speak_v for_o prayer_n to_o angel_n which_o true_a s._n ambrose_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o exception_n condemn_v falsification_n 12_o pag._n 36._o he_o produce_v hierome_n as_o a_o witness_n for_o prayer_n to_o saint_n and_o allege_v his_o book_n against_o vigilantius_n for_o that_o purpose_n but_o unless_o he_o falsify_v s._n hieromes_n word_n he_o shall_v not_o find_v any_o thing_n in_o he_o that_o make_v for_o his_o advantage_n falsification_n 13_o pag._n 53._o &_o 54._o he_o false_o allege_v the_o 4._o council_n of_o toledo_n c_o 1._o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la trallianos_fw-la cyrille_n cateche_n 4._o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 46._o hierome_n upon_o the_o 4._o to_o the_o ephes_n gregory_n moral_n lib._n 13._o c._n 20._o and_o all_o to_o prove_v limbus_n patrum_fw-la which_o the_o papist_n fancy_n to_o be_v in_o hell_n and_o a_o receptacle_n of_o the_o father_n before_o christ_n his_o falsehood_n may_v appear_v for_o that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o testimony_n make_v for_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la and_o that_o if_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o bellarmine_n will_v teach_v he_o lib._n de_fw-fr anima_fw-la christi_fw-la c._n 14._o where_o he_o shall_v not_o once_o find_v his_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la mention_v in_o any_o father_n falsification_n 14_o pag._n 62._o he_o do_v false_o ascribe_v the_o defence_n of_o woman_n baptism_n to_o master_n hooker_n of_o bless_a memory_n whosoever_o list_v to_o read_v master_n hooker_n five_o book_n of_o ecclesiast_fw-la policy_n sect_n 62._o shall_v find_v that_o he_o condemn_v woman_n that_o presume_v to_o baptize_v child_n albeit_o he_o do_v not_o pronounce_v the_o baptism_n by_o they_o administer_v to_o be_v of_o no_o validity_n falsification_n 15_o pag._n 80._o &_o 81._o he_o allege_v s._n augustine_n ser_n 243._o de_fw-la tempore_fw-la and_o the_o council_n of_o neocaesarea_n c._n 7._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o not_o bless_v second_o marriage_n be_v no_o new_a device_n but_o a_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o yet_o neither_o do_v the_o canon_n allege_v nor_o the_o author_n of_o that_o sermon_n speak_v one_o word_n of_o blessing_n of_o second_o marriage_n furthermore_o neither_o this_o sermon_n that_o he_o allege_v seem_v to_o be_v s._n augustine_n nor_o be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o neocaesarea_n authentical_a final_o if_o this_o simple_a fellow_n have_v allege_v more_o place_n more_o he_o will_v have_v allege_v false_o be_v not_o able_a to_o allege_v any_o thing_n almost_o true_o if_o then_o the_o archpriest_n blackewell_n do_v happen_v to_o meet_v with_o this_o owl_n of_o canke_z wood_n he_o may_v do_v well_o to_o admonish_v he_o not_o to_o abuse_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o allege_v and_o his_o reader_n patience_n which_o he_o tri_v to_o the_o uttermost_a with_o such_o notable_a falsity_n he_o himself_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o flagitious_a matter_n to_o poule_n and_o pare_v the_o sentence_n of_o venerable_a antiquity_n there_o rest_v therefore_o nothing_o but_o see_v he_o have_v confess_v his_o fault_n that_o the_o archpriest_n set_v he_o to_o penance_n and_o afterward_o cause_v he_o if_o he_o have_v a_o good_a voice_n to_o sing_v mass_n see_v he_o can_v say_v no_o better_o chap._n xii_o a_o note_n of_o diverse_a untrueth_n tell_v by_o owlyglasse_n in_o his_o pamphlet_n wherein_o he_o pretend_v to_o charge_v other_o with_o untrueth_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n for_o any_o man_n to_o lie_v but_o for_o he_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o charge_v other_o with_o lie_v every_o foot_n to_o lie_v be_v not_o only_o a_o great_a shame_n but_o also_o a_o argument_n that_o he_o be_v past_a shame_n let_v he_o therefore_o the_o next_o time_n look_v better_o to_o himself_o and_o desist_v to_o rail_v face_n and_o slander_n unless_o he_o stand_v himself_o upon_o better_a ground_n and_o do_v use_v more_o truth_n in_o his_o deal_n falsification_n 1_o in_o his_o preface_n he_o say_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v plant_v here_o by_o gregory_n the_o great_a but_o he_o tell_v a_o great_a untruth_n for_o neither_o be_v gregory_n ever_o here_o in_o this_o island_n nor_o do_v either_o he_o or_o his_o agent_n maintain_v that_o doctrine_n that_o be_v publish_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n or_o those_o point_n which_o i_o have_v declare_v neither_o to_o be_v ancient_a nor_o general_o hold_v falsification_n 2_o he_o doubt_v not_o also_o to_o affirm_v that_o gregory_n receive_v that_o religion_n which_o now_o the_o papist_n profess_v from_o peter_n let_v he_o therefore_o show_v that_o all_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n against_o which_o i_o except_v in_o my_o challenge_n be_v receive_v from_o peter_n or_o else_o he_o must_v receive_v answer_n that_o speak_v of_o religion_n he_o speak_v without_o religion_n reason_n or_o conscience_n falsification_n 3_o he_o charge_v i_o and_o m._n willet_n with_o assault_v the_o impregnable_a fort_n of_o god_n church_n and_o batter_v that_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v but_o if_o he_o mean_v the_o true_a church_n then_o do_v he_o make_v a_o lie_n of_o us._n if_o he_o mean_v the_o present_a romish_a congregation_n adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o make_v a_o lie_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o his_o church_n for_o we_o have_v by_o many_o argument_n declare_v that_o the_o romanist_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n we_o have_v also_o show_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o that_o decline_a from_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n they_o be_v fall_v into_o many_o foul_a heresy_n falsification_n 4_o further_n speak_v of_o his_o consort_n he_o say_v they_o repair_v to_o the_o continual_a tradition_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o reject_v the_o same_o but_o he_o lie_v both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o for_o neither_o do_v the_o romanist_n regard_v the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n nor_o do_v we_o desire_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o that_o late_a custom_n and_o tradition_n reject_v we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o sound_a form_n of_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o government_n falsification_n 5_o he_o say_v they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a learned_a father_n and_o that_o we_o reject_v they_o but_o the_o first_o be_v prove_v a_o lie_n by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o popish_a proctor_n who_o most_o light_o reject_v the_o father_n when_o they_o make_v against_o they_o the_o second_n be_v reprove_v by_o our_o confession_n wherein_o we_o show_v that_o we_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o that_o all_o latter_a decretal_n call_v we_o may_v return_v to_o the_o ancient_a father_n faith_n falsification_n 6_o he_o tell_v we_o further_o that_o papist_n appeal_v to_o general_a counsel_n and_o that_o we_o will_v not_o admit_v they_o but_o after_o his_o fashion_n he_o hudle_v up_o lie_v by_o couple_n for_o neither_o do_v they_o admit_v any_o counsel_n but_o such_o as_o please_v they_o nor_o do_v we_o refuse_v to_o admit_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n establish_v by_o ancient_a and_o lawful_a general_a counsel_n falsification_n 7_o he_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o severe_a and_o yet_o the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o all_o place_n papist_n maintain_v open_a stew_n and_o in_o rome_n and_o diverse_a great_a city_n suffer_v jew_n and_o turk_n to_o dwell_v quiet_o further_o the_o pope_n do_v set_v to_o sale_n all_o sin_n and_o every_o polshorne_a paltry_a fellow_n think_v he_o can_v give_v absolution_n to_o sinner_n which_o bring_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n into_o contempt_n final_o no_o sect_n ever_o live_v more_o loose_o or_o lewd_o these_o thing_n therefore_o unless_o they_o be_v better_o answer_v do_v sufficient_o convince_v he_o of_o lie_v and_o his_o consort_n of_o loose_a live_n and_o popish_a religion_n of_o lightness_n falsification_n 8_o in_o the_o same_o lie_a preface_n he_o say_v that_o protestant_n doctrine_n lose_v the_o reins_n to_o all_o liberty_n that_o unbrideled_a sensuality_n will_v never_o put_v up_o petition_n for_o any_o great_a and_o by_o protestant_n he_o understand_v true_a christian_n that_o abhor_v the_o abomination_n of_o babel_n but_o if_o he_o have_v not_o give_v the_o reins_n to_o his_o unbrideled_a tongue_n to_o speak_v all_o villainy_n of_o honest_a man_n he_o will_v not_o have_v utter_v and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o brutish_a beast_n that_o use_v not_o to_o be_v rain_v he_o will_v not_o have_v write_v such_o impudent_a lie_n let_v he_o therefore_o set_v down_o our_o doctrine_n wherein_o we_o seem_v to_o let_v loose_a our_o sensual_a affection_n and_o let_v he_o if_o he_o can_v show_v any_o man_n of_o our_o side_n that_o allow_v public_a stew_n as_o the_o jesuite_n
if_o he_o have_v not_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n that_o the_o case_n be_v not_o like_a and_o the_o reason_n he_o may_v have_v understand_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v senseless_a they_o be_v so_o plain_o lay_v down_o in_o my_o refutation_n of_o his_o father_n robert_n parson_n his_o calumnious_a relation_n send_v we_o from_o rome_n very_o wise_o of_o matter_n do_v in_o france_n further_o he_o may_v well_o have_v remember_v if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v forgetful_a that_o i_o offer_v the_o papist_n more_o than_o be_v demand_v for_o i_o do_v not_o only_o promise_v to_o deal_v with_o parson_n or_o any_o of_o his_o consorte_n in_o any_o private_a conference_n but_o also_o in_o public_a writing_n which_o may_v not_o only_o be_v view_v of_o all_o man_n but_o also_o remain_v to_o posterity_n as_o a_o testimony_n against_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v convince_v either_o of_o untruth_n or_o forgery_n and_o which_o be_v extant_a in_o print_n neither_o we_o nor_o our_o adversary_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o alter_v or_o deny_v or_o misreport_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v as_o be_v the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o popish_a parasite_n in_o such_o conference_n and_o to_o show_v that_o i_o mean_v to_o perform_v as_o much_o as_o i_o promise_v i_o begin_v to_o object_v certain_a epistle_n and_o canon_n forge_v not_o by_o such_o base_a threadbare_a companion_n as_o himself_o but_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o show_v also_o that_o they_o have_v falsify_v the_o scripture_n and_o publish_v infinite_a and_o montrous_a lie_n in_o their_o legend_n read_v public_o in_o the_o church_n final_o i_o put_v robert_n parson_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o notorious_a clip_n and_o corrupt_v of_o father_n of_o late_o practise_v by_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o rubarbatif_n and_o expurgatorie_n index_n but_o he_o like_v a_o wise_a fellow_n keep_v himself_o close_o and_o will_v no_o more_o hear_v of_o the_o matter_n think_v it_o be_v better_a as_o the_o old_a proverb_n teach_v in_o this_o carian_a to_o make_v trial_n of_o this_o hard_a adventure_n and_o to_o experiment_n to_o the_o proverb_n in_o care_n periculum_fw-la facito_fw-la teach_v that_o in_o base_a fellow_n it_o be_v best_o to_o try_v dangerous_a experiment_n thrust_v this_o ass_n down_o headlong_o from_o the_o rock_n know_v well_o that_o if_o we_o shall_v overcome_v he_o or_o come_v to_o the_o take_n of_o he_o up_o we_o shall_v find_v nothing_o but_o the_o carcase_n of_o a_o dead_a ass_n wherefore_o then_o be_v our_o adversary_n so_o desirous_a of_o a_o conference_n that_o doubt_v to_o try_v his_o manhood_n in_o justify_v his_o friend_n falsehood_n and_o forgery_n concern_v matter_n already_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n ep_v charge_n protrusit_fw-la asinum_fw-la in_o rupes_fw-la horat._n ep_v again_o when_o he_o see_v our_o readiness_n to_o answer_v why_o be_v he_o so_o slow_a to_o object_v final_o where_o he_o think_v to_o triumpth_n most_o glorious_o and_o to_o lead_v my_o brother_n willet_n and_o i_o both_o captive_n and_o fast_v chain_v at_o the_o tail_n of_o his_o chariot_n there_o he_o do_v most_o pitiful_o disgrace_v himself_o and_o free_v we_o and_o mar_v all_o that_o he_o meddle_v withal_o for_o first_o speak_v of_o falsification_n he_o compare_v they_o to_o christ_n and_o such_o man_n incredulity_n as_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o he_o compare_v to_o the_o incredulity_n of_o thomas_n that_o will_v not_o believe_v christ_n resurrection_n before_o he_o see_v and_o feel_v manifest_a sign_n of_o it_o the_o sentence_n allege_v out_o of_o father_n and_o other_o author_n say_v 5._o say_v praes_n fol._n 5._o he_o be_v so_o mangle_v and_o maim_v &c._n &c._n as_o no_o protestant_n i_o be_o sure_a will_v believe_v until_o feel_v and_o see_v with_o saint_n thomas_n convince_v his_o incredulity_n be_v not_o this_o a_o brave_a gallant_a then_o trow_v you_o that_o compare_v truth_n to_o falsehood_n the_o feel_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o feel_n of_o falsification_n second_o where_o the_o main_a controversy_n betwixt_o i_o and_o robert_n parson_n in_o my_o challenge_n be_v concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o where_o this_o blind_a baiard_n may_v see_v that_o i_o have_v allege_v diverse_a strong_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o congregation_n of_o romanistes_n under_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n there_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o my_o adversary_n smooth_o dissemble_v the_o matter_n and_o take_v that_o as_o grant_v which_o he_o poor_a fellow_n can_v never_o prove_v and_o say_v that_o my_o brother_n willet_n praef_n willet_n fol._n 1._o praef_n and_o i_o employ_v our_o force_n in_o assault_v the_o impregnable_a sort_n of_o god_n church_n and_o batter_v that_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v as_o if_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o malignant_a and_o wicked_a rabble_n of_o antichrist_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o as_o if_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v not_o long_o since_o prevail_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o take_v this_o for_o grant_v that_o be_v the_o controversy_n if_o without_o controversy_n i_o have_v not_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n show_v that_o he_o be_v pregnant_a with_o folly_n of_o which_o he_o will_v not_o be_v deliver_v before_o he_o die_v &_o that_o his_o face_n be_v as_o hard_a as_o the_o rock_n of_o which_o he_o talk_v three_o he_o call_v popish_a religion_n catholic_a and_o affirm_v praef_n affirm_v fol._n 2._o praef_n it_o be_v plant_v here_o by_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o by_o succession_n receive_v it_o from_o peter_n &c_n &c_n and_o that_o it_o be_v always_o visible_a since_o christ_n bear_v still_o sail_v in_o the_o tempest_n of_o all_o persecution_n but_o he_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o show_v how_o true_a religion_n can_v be_v visible_a for_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v 4._o say_v john_n 4._o that_o true_a worshipper_n worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o spiritual_a worship_n and_o true_a internal_a devotion_n be_v not_o so_o easy_o see_v unless_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n suppose_v popish_a religion_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o pope_n mitre_n and_o in_o cowl_n of_o monk_n and_o such_o like_a external_a matter_n he_o shall_v hardly_o prove_v religion_n to_o be_v visible_a again_o he_o do_v great_o wrong_v the_o popish_a cause_n if_o he_o affirm_v popish_a religion_n to_o have_v be_v plant_v here_o in_o england_n by_o gregory_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o answer_v my_o challenge_n and_o to_o demonstrate_v those_o novelty_n and_o late_o receive_v fancy_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v either_o to_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o gregory_n or_o at_o the_o least_o by_o his_o disciple_n to_o have_v be_v plant_v here_o in_o england_n furthermore_o see_v in_o my_o challenge_n i_o do_v prove_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o catholic_a and_o give_v for_o justification_n of_o that_o point_n notable_a instance_n such_o as_o our_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v be_v it_o not_o notorious_a impudence_n to_o take_v this_o as_o a_o matter_n either_o prove_v or_o confess_v and_o sly_o to_o call_v heresy_n catholic_a religion_n final_o i_o must_v entreat_v some_o plain_a deal_n papist_n to_o admonish_v this_o detector_n or_o rather_o detractor_n of_o we_o not_o to_o say_v that_o gregory_n receive_v the_o popish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v first_o establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n from_o peter_n or_o that_o all_o that_o be_v teach_v in_o gregory_n dialogue_n or_o epistle_n come_v from_o peter_n or_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v visible_a in_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n monk_n and_o swarm_n of_o friar_n and_o in_o romish_a ceremony_n have_v bear_v sail_n in_o the_o tempest_n of_o all_o persecution_n for_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o bloody_a inquisitor_n that_o do_v persecute_v other_o and_o be_v not_o persecute_v and_o if_o this_o be_v a_o qu●…ty_n of_o the_o church_n to_o bear_v sail_n in_o tempest_n of_o persecution_n certes_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o retinue_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n have_v live_v in_o all_o pomp_n jollity_n and_o pleasure_n but_o if_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v so_o well_o able_a to_o bear_v sail_n in_o tempest_n it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n will_v sail_v to_o the_o india_n where_o we_o may_v hear_v no_o more_o of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o will_v take_v our_o adversary_n with_o they_o who_o percase_o will_v prove_v a_o better_a swabber_n than_o a_o disputer_n four_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o praeface_n he_o say_v he_o will_v present_v to_o his_o
commit_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o verse_n and_o mar_v the_o sense_n his_o reproachful_a term_n omit_v and_o his_o small_a error_n pardon_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o his_o pamphlet_n which_o i_o have_v not_o answer_v and_o i_o hope_v in_o that_o sort_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o take_v just_a exception_n against_o any_o thing_n i_o have_v say_v or_o do_v it_o may_v be_v that_o he_o will_v be_v offend_v for_o that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v by_o letter_n and_o find_v his_o name_n to_o be_v e._n o._n i_o do_v name_n the_o baby_n sometime_o detector_n or_o detractor_n sometime_o ectaticall_a owliglasse_n i_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o do_v it_o for_o i_o do_v perceive_v that_o he_o be_v a_o desciple_n of_o robert_n parson_n who_o in_o his_o pamphlet_n of_o reason_n for_o not_o go_v to_o church_n call_v himself_o john_n owlet_n what_o then_o can_v be_v more_o consonant_n then_o that_o his_o disciple_n that_o go_v about_o to_o imitate_v he_o in_o his_o pride_n rail_v and_o phrase_n of_o speech_n though_o very_o unhandsom_o shall_v be_v call_v owliglasse_n alias_o howlyglasse_n and_o ectaticall_a that_o be_v leap_v out_o of_o his_o wit_n into_o a_o little_a fit_a of_o foolery_n if_o he_o like_v not_o this_o name_n then_o let_v he_o set_v down_o his_o own_o name_n and_o for_o my_o part_n he_o shall_v not_o hear_v worse_o than_o his_o name_n unless_o his_o fault_n deserve_v it_o both_o this_o challenge_n and_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o detractor_n exception_n presume_v upon_o thy_o indifferency_n i_o recommend_v to_o thy_o read_n much_o i_o will_v not_o request_v at_o thy_o hand_n and_o small_a favour_n be_v easy_o grant_v examine_v i_o pray_v thou_o both_o my_o answer_n and_o my_o adversary_n objection_n and_o yield_v to_o neither_o side_n more_o than_o be_v prove_v compare_v his_o great_a brag_n with_o his_o poor_a talon_n of_o writing_n and_o his_o scornful_a term_n with_o his_o slender_a matter_n and_o thou_o shall_v easy_o perceive_v that_o short_a answer_n may_v serve_v such_o simple_a argument_n it_o may_v be_v that_o thou_o and_o i_o differ_v in_o opinion_n yet_o never_o refuse_v to_o yield_v to_o truth_n nor_o resolve_v to_o defend_v disloialty_n or_o error_n i_o have_v as_o thou_o may_v see_v deal_v plain_o and_o profess_v open_o that_o i_o will_v not_o maintain_v any_o error_n whereof_o i_o can_v be_v convince_v if_o the_o adversary_n will_v take_v the_o same_o course_n there_o may_v be_v a_o end_n of_o this_o contention_n rob._n parson_n begin_v this_o quarrel_n albeit_o he_o have_v first_o give_v it_o over_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o plead_a stand_v principal_o upon_o the_o title_n of_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a religion_n and_o the_o innocency_n of_o mass_a priest_n and_o friar_n and_o their_o consort_n i_o give_v he_o a_o short_a issue_n in_o my_o former_a challenge_n and_o offer_v to_o prove_v that_o popish_a religion_n establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o now_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v neither_o ancient_a catholic_a nor_o true_a if_o they_o can_v prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n why_o do_v they_o entitle_v themselves_o catholic_n if_o their_o relsgion_n be_v new_a why_o do_v they_o brag_v of_o antiquity_n if_o they_o be_v haereticke_n why_o be_v they_o not_o ashamed_a to_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o praerogative_n of_o the_o true_a church_n if_o the_o jebusite_n and_o rheir_a consort_n be_v combine_v with_o foreign_a enemy_n what_o reason_n have_v they_o to_o challenge_v the_o favour_n due_a to_o subject_n upon_o occasion_n of_o a_o ecstaticall_a fellow_n importunity_n i_o do_v renew_v the_o same_o challenge_n again_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n provoke_v robert_n parson_n to_o answer_v and_o because_o percase_o he_o be_v busy_a complote_v of_o matter_n against_o his_o country_n at_o rome_n i_o address_v it_o also_o to_o friar_n garnet_n and_o the_o archpriest_n blackewell_n that_o be_v near_o at_o hand_n and_o not_o unaquainted_a with_o the_o worthy_a volume_n of_o exception_n late_o publish_v against_o i_o if_o parson_n have_v not_o laisure_n let_v one_o of_o they_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o begin_v a_o quarrel_n and_o to_o give_v it_o over_o first_o for_o one_o bout_n they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o refuse_v i_o if_o they_o pretend_v want_n of_o book_n and_o laisure_n they_o know_v douai_n be_v not_o far_o off_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o cry_v out_o of_o falsification_n and_o untruth_n let_v they_o therefore_o make_v trial_n how_o they_o can_v answer_v for_o themselves_o parson_n be_v wont_v to_o be_v ready_a to_o plead_v for_o other_o now_o therefore_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n but_o to_o plead_v for_o himself_o in_o time_n pass_v he_o and_o that_o false_a traitor_n allen_n fill_v man_n ear_n with_o their_o clamour_n contra_fw-la persecutores_fw-la anglos_n let_v they_o therefore_o defend_v their_o consort_n that_o be_v preditores_fw-la angliae_fw-la &_o enemy_n to_o their_o country_n no_o man_n have_v great_a cause_n to_o defend_v traitor_n than_o traitor_n if_o they_o refuse_v to_o answer_v for_o themselves_o or_o to_o satisfy_v other_o i_o hope_v for_o modesty_n sake_n hereafter_o they_o will_v neither_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o shelter_n of_o catholic_a religion_n neither_o can_v they_o with_o honesty_n vaunt_v of_o antiquity_n or_o accuse_v true_a man_n of_o heresy_n whereof_o themselves_o be_v most_o guilty_a final_o if_o shame_n restrain_v not_o their_o tongue_n yet_o fear_v of_o punishment_n may_v keep_v they_o in_o temper_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v profess_v enemy_n to_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n &_o a_o pack_n of_o rinegned_a english_a conspire_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o this_o state_n &_o combine_v together_o for_o the_o overthrow_n of_o religion_n &_o the_o realm_n if_o my_o adversary_n and_o his_o consort_n shall_v no_o way_n be_v able_a though_o otherwise_o willing_a enough_o to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o most_o malicious_a libel_v lie_v and_o forge_v i_o trust_v they_o will_v hereafter_o spare_v i_o a_o plain_a fellow_n and_o one_o that_o no_o way_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o poor_a shift_n for_o the_o justification_n of_o my_o cause_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o with_o shame_n enough_o they_o will_v for_o ever_o hereafter_o cease_v to_o make_v any_o challenge_n concern_v lie_n and_o falsification_n have_v so_o evil_a success_n in_o this_o first_o encounter_n if_o i_o have_v clear_v this_o state_n from_o all_o imputation_n of_o injustice_n in_o the_o proceed_n against_o jesuite_n seminary_a priest_n popish_a rebel_n and_o their_o adherent_n neither_o have_v the_o magistrate_n reason_n to_o suffer_v robert_n parson_n his_o libel_n to_o fly_v abroad_o to_o the_o slander_n of_o the_o state_n nor_o any_o good_a subject_n to_o allow_v of_o his_o calumniation_n and_o most_o wicked_a libel_n if_o it_o do_v clear_o appear_v that_o robert_n parson_n and_o his_o treacherous_a consort_n be_v link_v and_o combine_v with_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o her_o majesty_n law_n and_o authority_n those_o that_o have_v the_o custody_n and_o execution_n of_o her_o law_n commit_v unto_o they_o i_o doubt_v not_o will_v have_v a_o watchful_a eye_n over_o the_o proceed_n of_o such_o slippery_a companion_n and_o with_o great_a constancy_n and_o resolution_n maintain_v her_o majesty_n authority_n and_o execute_v her_o law_n against_o such_o as_o wilful_o impugn_v it_o the_o late_a edict_n publish_v against_o this_o vermin_n do_v show_v that_o the_o state_n be_v not_o only_o well_o acquaint_v with_o their_o lewd_a practice_n but_o also_o resolute_a to_o punish_v such_o wicked_a practiser_n and_o plotter_n as_o hitherto_o have_v abuse_v her_o majesty_n great_a clemency_n towards_o they_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o jebusite_n and_o priest_n teach_v heresy_n and_o lie_v it_o behoove_v all_o true_a christian_n to_o avoid_v they_o saint_n john_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n do_v give_v we_o warning_n not_o to_o have_v any_o familiarity_n with_o they_o or_o so_o much_o as_o once_o to_o bid_v they_o god_n speed_n the_o church_n 2._o church_n apocal._n 2._o of_o thyatira_n be_v reproove_v for_o permit_v a_o wicked_a false_a prophet_n to_o teach_v and_o seduce_v god_n people_n and_o our_o saviour_n 7._o saviour_n matth._n 7._o christ_n give_v we_o warning_n of_o false_a prophet_n that_o come_v unto_o we_o in_o sheep_n clothing_n and_o inward_o be_v raven_a wolf_n these_o false_a masspriest_n devour_v many_o widow_n house_n and_o abuse_v the_o simplicity_n of_o many_o young_a youth_n to_o their_o utter_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n and_o yet_o that_o be_v not_o the_o worst_a for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o overthrow_v their_o worldly_a state_n but_o also_o destroy_v their_o soul_n and_o lead_v they_o headlong_o into_o hell_n if_o the_o pope_n agent_n under_o
pretence_n of_o religion_n have_v entangle_v their_o follower_n in_o diverse_a practice_n of_o faction_n and_o treason_n i_o hope_v all_o english_a albeit_o otherwise_o favourer_n of_o popery_n will_v better_o look_v how_o they_o engage_v themselves_o in_o treason_n they_o come_v from_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o depend_v upon_o they_o and_o though_o they_o talk_v of_o religion_n yet_o their_o intention_n be_v whole_o for_o the_o pope_n and_o spaniard_n and_o their_o course_n be_v irreligious_a and_o factious_a if_o popish_a religion_n found_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o teach_v by_o late_a pope_n and_o their_o proctor_n be_v catholic_a and_o ancient_a then_o will_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o show_v it_o and_o to_o answer_v our_o objection_n where_o we_o prove_v the_o contrary_n if_o our_o adversary_n fly_v trial_n and_o will_v not_o join_v with_o we_o and_o direct_o answer_v then_o have_v all_o papist_n and_o other_o reason_n to_o fly_v from_o such_o false_a teacher_n and_o heretic_n and_o to_o abandon_v all_o their_o wicked_a heresy_n there_o be_v no_o agreement_n betwixt_o christ_n and_o belial_n 6._o 2._o cor._n 6._o betwixt_o truth_n and_o error_n light_n and_o darkness_n if_o they_o can_v show_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v no_o idolater_n they_o will_v clear_v themselves_o if_o not_o why_o do_v they_o seek_v to_o erect_v altar_n of_o baal_n in_o every_o corner_n and_o why_o do_v not_o all_o christian_n avoid_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o priest_n of_o baal_n in_o their_o idolatrous_a mass_n 6._o 2._o cor._n 6._o there_o be_v no_o agreement_n betwixt_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o idol_n neither_o 10._o 1._o cor._n 10._o can_v any_o drink_v the_o lord_n cup_n that_o do_v participate_v at_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n or_o devilish_a mass_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o talk_v of_o the_o lord_n cup_n when_o these_o idolatrous_a priest_n take_v the_o lord_n cup_n from_o all_o that_o follow_v they_o if_o the_o adversary_n be_v clear_a of_o lie_v and_o falsification_n then_o will_v they_o answer_v plain_o and_o direct_o as_o i_o have_v answer_v they_o if_o their_o lie_n and_o forgery_n be_v make_v notorious_a to_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o very_o wise_a that_o will_v trust_v such_o lie_v and_o forge_v companion_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o need_v to_o declare_v that_o brief_o which_o at_o large_a be_v prove_v in_o the_o discourse_n follow_v read_v only_o diligent_o and_o examine_v careful_o and_o judge_v indifferent_o and_o so_o leave_v thou_o to_o thy_o meditation_n and_o refer_v thou_o to_o the_o touch_n of_o both_o our_o adversary_n accusation_n and_o our_o answer_n i_o beseech_v god_n to_o give_v thou_o true_a understanding_n of_o his_o save_a truth_n and_o that_o he_o will_v give_v thou_o grace_n if_o thou_o know_v the_o truth_n to_o persevere_v constant_a unto_o the_o end_n if_o thou_o carry_v a_o prejudicate_a affection_n towards_o popery_n then_o to_o see_v into_o the_o deformity_n imposture_n and_o abuse_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o that_o in_o the_o end_n it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o discover_v all_o fraud_n imposture_n conspiracy_n treachery_n and_o villainy_n of_o the_o popish_a faction_n and_o to_o let_v thou_o see_v the_o damnation_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o babylon_n adieu_n thou_o in_o all_o christian_a affection_n matth_n sutcliffe_n a_o challenge_n concern_v the_o malignant_a church_n of_o antichrist_n and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o lewd_a practice_n of_o papist_n direct_v to_o rob._n parson_n friar_n garnet_n g._n blackwell_n the_o archpriest_n and_o all_o their_o adherent_n chap._n i._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v and_o that_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v 3._o be_v 1._o tim._n 3._o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o ibidem_fw-la and_o ibidem_fw-la the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o 4._o and_o galat._n 4._o the_o mother_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o all_o congregation_n that_o profess_v christian_a religion_n do_v also_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n ult._n church_n inst_z lib._n 4._o c._n ult._n singuli_fw-la quique_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la coetus_fw-la say_v lactantius_n se_fw-la potissimum_fw-la christianos_n &_o svam_fw-la esse_fw-la catholicam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la putant_fw-la even_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n do_v imagine_v themselves_o to_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o entitle_v their_o congregation_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a the_o papist_n afford_v we_o most_o evident_a proof_n for_o albeit_o in_o many_o point_v they_o know_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n jesus_n but_o follow_v a_o stranger_n that_o without_o all_o colour_n challenge_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v christ_n vicar_n yet_o very_o confident_o and_o proud_o they_o call_v themselves_o christ_n true_a catholic_a church_n and_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o all_o those_o prerogative_n that_o be_v due_a to_o his_o most_o holy_a spouse_n neither_o do_v they_o only_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o exclude_v all_o other_o from_o the_o same_o and_o as_o leo_n say_v speak_v to_o certain_a monk_n of_o palestine_n ecclesiae_fw-la nomine_fw-la adversus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la armaminï_n so_o we_o may_v well_o say_v of_o these_o blind_a zelator_n of_o popery_n that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n they_o fight_v against_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o the_o papist_n adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a invincible_a reason_n argument_n 1_o for_o first_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v only_o upon_o christ_n jesus_n as_o a_o principal_a rock_n and_o a_o foundation_n most_o sure_a and_o immoovable_a no_o man_n say_v the_o 3._o the_o 1._o cor._n 3._o apostle_n can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n beside_o that_o which_o already_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v christ_n jesus_n for_o he_o be_v that_o 28._o that_o isai_n 28._o corner_n stone_n that_o be_v place_v in_o the_o foundation_n of_o zion_n he_o be_v that_o 16._o that_o matth._n 16._o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la quam_fw-la confessus_fw-la es_fw-la say_v s._n dom._n s._n serm._n 13._o de_fw-fr verb._n dom._n augustine_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la quam_fw-la cognovisti_fw-la dicens_fw-la tue_fw-la christus_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la meipsum_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la vivi_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n jesus_n who_o peter_n confess_v neither_o do_v the_o father_n mean_v otherwise_o where_o they_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v either_o upon_o the_o confession_n or_o faith_n of_o peter_n or_o else_o upon_o peter_n himself_o for_o all_o these_o do_v either_o indirect_o understand_v christ_n who_o peter_n confess_v or_o peter_n faith_n concern_v christ_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o his_o see_v and_o doctrine_n est_fw-la petri_n sedes_fw-la say_v rom._n say_v in_o praefat_fw-la in_o lib._n de_fw-fr pontiff_a rom._n bellar._n lapis_fw-la probatus_fw-la angularis_fw-la pretiosus_fw-la in_o fundamento_fw-la fundatus_fw-la he_o rom._n he_o lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n say_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n and_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o certain_a word_n of_o hierome_n although_o that_o good_a father_n never_o think_v of_o any_o such_o matter_n church_n matter_n sanders_n his_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n sanders_n do_v endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o unmovable_a rock_n of_o the_o church_n turrian_n likewise_o because_o christ_n say_v aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la &_o non_fw-la aedifico_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o future_a time_n and_o not_o only_a saint_n peter_n be_v understand_v by_o that_o rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v see_v then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v build_v upon_o a_o foundation_n diverse_a from_o the_o foundation_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n and_o rely_v upon_o the_o pope_n as_o much_o or_o more_o than_o christ_n jesus_n it_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n for_o if_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o chief_a foundation_n and_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o next_o they_o cross_v the_o scripture_n that_o make_v christ_n the_o sole_a foundation_n and_o only_o attribute_v the_o name_n of_o foundation_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n in_o that_o
body_n to_o abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o sacred_a blood_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v express_o forbid_v all_o communicant_n beside_o the_o priest_n to_o receive_v the_o cup_n and_o take_v this_o to_o be_v good_a religion_n the_o papist_n also_o be_v well_o content_a to_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o think_v not_o the_o sacrament_n so_o mangle_v to_o be_v imperfect_a argument_n 34_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n never_o teach_v nor_o think_v so_o base_o of_o the_o most_o holy_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n christ_n jesus_n as_o that_o a_o mouse_n a_o hog_n or_o dog_n or_o other_o creature_n eat_v the_o consecrate_a host_n do_v also_o eat_v the_o lord_n body_n press_v it_o with_o tooth_n and_o swallow_v it_o down_o into_o the_o belly_n nor_o do_v the_o same_o imagine_v that_o the_o lord_n body_n may_v be_v throw_v in_o the_o mire_n and_o tread_v under_o foot_n and_o throw_v into_o place_n unclean_a and_o too_o homely_a to_o be_v name_v but_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n beléeve_v that_o brute_n beast_n may_v eat_v christ_n body_n if_o a_o dog_n or_o hog_n say_v 45._o say_v p._n 4_o q_o 45._o alexander_n hales_n shall_v eat_v a_o consecrate_a host_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n but_o the_o lord_n body_n shall_v go_v therewithal_o into_o that_o dog_n or_o hog_n belly_n some_o have_v say_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n his_o sum_n of_o divinity_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v take_v of_o a_o mouse_n or_o a_o dog_n straightway_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n cease_v to_o be_v there_o etc._n etc._n but_o that_o be_v derogatory_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o sacrament_n it_o be_v also_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o papistical_a doctor_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o long_o continue_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n continue_v uncorrupt_a and_o that_o they_o go_v into_o all_o place_n together_o unless_o therefore_o robert_n parson_n or_o some_o other_o do_v help_v here_o and_o show_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v believe_v and_o teach_v as_o before_o be_v declare_v both_o he_o and_o his_o consort_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n argument_n 35_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n have_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n one_o altar_n one_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n the_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v christ_n jesus_n he_o be_v also_o that_o sacrifice_n the_o altar_n be_v his_o cross_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la say_v god_n by_o his_o 5._o his_o psal_n 109._o &_o hebr._n 5._o prophet_n secundum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la melchisedech_n he_o because_o he_o remain_v for_o ever_o have_v a_o eternal_a priesthood_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v hebr._n 7._o but_o the_o papist_n erect_v altar_n of_o stone_n whereupon_o they_o say_v they_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n they_o believe_v also_o that_o their_o priest_n offer_v up_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o they_o be_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n as_o if_o they_o have_v neither_o father_n nor_o mother_n nor_o certain_a genealogy_n and_o be_v holy_a and_o impolluted_a do_v they_o not_o then_o declare_v that_o they_o have_v erect_v a_o new_a congregation_n that_o be_v diverse_a from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o the_o father_n do_v call_v the_o lord_n supper_n or_o eucharist_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o they_o do_v not_o so_o call_v it_o for_o other_o cause_n but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n christ_n say_v 10._o say_v dedemonstrat_n euangelic_a lib._n 1._o c._n 10._o eusebius_n offer_v a_o most_o excellent_a sacrifice_n for_o we_o all_o and_o give_v we_o a_o memorial_n or_o sacrament_n thereof_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n teach_v we_o that_o our_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o a_o sampler_n or_o memorial_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n and_o this_o peter_n lombard_n frank_o confess_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v and_o consecrate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n say_v 12._o say_v sentent_fw-fr 4._o do_v 12._o he_o because_o it_o be_v a_o memorial_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o holy_a oblation_n make_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n argument_n 36_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n never_o erect_v more_o altar_n than_o one_o in_o one_o church_n nor_o do_v the_o same_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o diverse_a angle_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n aliud_fw-la altar_n constitue_n say_v universae_fw-la say_v epist_n 25._o pleb_n universae_fw-la cyprian_n aut_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la nowm_fw-la fieri_fw-la praeter_fw-la unum_fw-la altar_n &_o unum_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la likewise_o say_v philadelph_n say_v epist_n ad_fw-la philadelph_n ignatius_n quod_fw-la unus_fw-la sit_fw-la panis_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la confractus_fw-la &_o unus_fw-la calix_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la but_o the_o papist_n have_v altar_n in_o every_o corner_n of_o their_o church_n and_o there_o diverse_a priest_n sing_v or_o say_v diverse_a mass_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n there_o also_o they_o consecrate_v and_o divide_v the_o sacrament_n make_v a_o division_n no_o less_o in_o their_o congregation_n then_o in_o their_o altar_n chalice_n and_o sacrifice_n argument_n 37_o the_o true_a church_n do_v never_o agree_v for_o trentale_n of_o mass_n nor_o for_o aniversary_n memorials_n nor_o sell_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n but_o the_o romish_a priest_n take_v money_n for_o trentale_n of_o mass_n and_o without_o hire_n they_o will_v not_o make_v aniversary_n commemoration_n they_o stick_v not_o also_o to_o sell_v christ_n body_n or_o at_o least_o their_o mass_n for_o money_n deteriores_fw-la sunt_fw-la juda_n say_v 23._o say_v onus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 23._o one_o speak_v of_o romish_a priest_n allege_v the_o authority_n of_o saint_n brigit_fw-la qui_fw-la pro_fw-la solis_fw-la denariis_fw-la i_o vendidit_fw-la illi_fw-la autem_fw-la pro_fw-la omni_fw-la mercimonio_fw-la argument_n 38_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v the_o church_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o eat_v and_o drunken_a of_o which_o we_o collect_v that_o it_o be_v available_a only_o for_o the_o quick_a that_o can_v receive_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o not_o for_o the_o dead_a that_o can_v do_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n neither_o do_v christ_n church_n believe_v that_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v satisfactory_a for_o pain_n in_o purgatory_n or_o good_a against_o lightning_n and_o thunder_n or_o such_o calamity_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v hold_v that_o their_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n be_v propitiatory_a for_o the_o dead_a as_o well_o as_o the_o quick_a &_o that_o the_o same_o be_v expiatory_a and_o do_v work_v diverse_a other_o wondrous_a effect_n hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la say_v 12._o say_v de_fw-fr valour_n missae_fw-la parad_a 12._o guernerus_n est_fw-la expiatiwm_fw-la debitae_fw-la poenae_fw-la tam_fw-la hic_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o futuro_fw-la exoluendae_fw-la 9_o exoluendae_fw-la ibidem_fw-la parad_a 9_o he_o show_v also_o that_o the_o same_o work_v miraculous_a effect_n against_o thunder_n danger_n of_o enemy_n and_o other_o calamity_n and_o that_o he_o that_o frequent_v the_o mass_n shall_v be_v direct_v in_o all_o thing_n which_o new_a doctrine_n unless_o robert_n parson_n can_v prove_v that_o it_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n will_v great_o endanger_v the_o state_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n argument_n 39_o in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n no_o priest_n ever_o take_v to_o himself_o so_o great_a presumption_n as_o to_o become_v a_o mediator_n to_o god_n for_o christ_n jesus_n for_o he_o be_v a_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n and_o mere_a blasphemy_n it_o be_v for_o a_o mortal_a man_n to_o challenge_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v a_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n but_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o priest_n become_v a_o mediator_n and_o intercessor_n for_o christ_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n he_o say_v missae_fw-la say_v in_o canone_o missae_fw-la supra_fw-la quae_fw-la propitio_fw-la acsereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respicere_fw-la digneris_fw-la &_o accepta_fw-la habere_fw-la sicut_fw-la accepta_fw-la habere_fw-la dignatus_fw-la es_fw-la munera_fw-la pveri_fw-la tui_fw-la iusti_fw-la abel_n &_o sacrificium_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la nostri_fw-la abrahae_fw-la upon_o which_o say_v he_o vouchsafe_v to_o look_v with_o a_o favourable_a and_o pleasant_a countenance_n and_o to_o accept_v they_o as_o thou_o vouchsafe_v to_o accept_v the_o gift_n of_o abel_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o patriarch_n abraham_n and_o afterward_o iube_fw-la haec_fw-la perferri_fw-la
per_fw-la manus_fw-la sancti_fw-la angeli_fw-la tui_fw-la in_o sublime_a altar_n tuum_fw-la command_v these_o thing_n say_v the_o priest_n speak_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o holy_a angel_n unto_o thy_o high_a altar_n these_o thing_n be_v blasphemous_a and_o can_v be_v allow_v of_o christ_n his_o church_n neither_o can_v parson_n or_o bellarmine_n answer_v that_o these_o word_n be_v find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o sacrament_n attribute_v to_o s._n ambrose_n lib._n 4._o c._n 6._o for_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n &_o the_o word_n of_o that_o author_n and_o the_o meaning_n of_o he_o be_v clean_o contrary_a for_o never_o shall_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o author_n of_o that_o treatise_n beléeve_v that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o that_o he_o mean_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n where_o he_o compare_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n and_o abraham_n argument_n 40_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n never_o add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o cup_n say_v novi_fw-la &_o aeterni_fw-la testamenti_fw-la mysterium_fw-la fidei_fw-la neither_o be_v these_o word_n find_v in_o the_o old_a formulary_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o treatise_n of_o the_o mass_n against_o bellarmine_n do_v not_o then_o this_o new_a trick_n of_o the_o latter_a romish_a church_n depart_v from_o the_o former_a show_v a_o manifest_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o argument_n 41_o the_o true_a church_n do_v never_o offer_v the_o sacrament_n pro_fw-la redemptione_n animarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la neither_o do_v the_o same_o use_v the_o commemoration_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o romish_a missal_n say_v memento_fw-la domine_fw-la famulorum_fw-la famularúmque_fw-la qui_fw-la nos_fw-la praecesserunt_fw-la cum_fw-la signo_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o dormiunt_fw-la in_o somno_fw-la pacis_fw-la nay_o this_o form_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o old_a formulary_a which_o the_o roman_n use_v about_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o but_o now_o all_o missae_fw-la all_o in_o canone_o missae_fw-la romanist_n do_v thus_o say_v and_o pray_v if_o then_o rob._n parson_n can_v show_v this_o form_n or_o any_o such_o prayer_n or_o word_n in_o ancient_a author_n he_o may_v do_v a_o great_a pleasure_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o otherwise_o be_v like_a to_o prove_v the_o synagogue_n of_o antichrist_n argument_n 42_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v never_o consecrate_v incense_n nor_o say_v missae_fw-la say_v in_o ordinar_n missae_fw-la per_fw-la intercessionem_fw-la beati_fw-la michaelis_fw-la archangeli_fw-la stantis_fw-la a_o dextris_fw-la altaris_fw-la incensi_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la electorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la incensum_fw-la istud_fw-la dignetur_fw-la dominus_fw-la benedicere_fw-la &_o in_o odorem_fw-la suavitatis_fw-la accipere_fw-la if_o robert_n parson_n can_v prove_v the_o contrary_a let_v he_o do_v it_o otherwise_o the_o romish_a church_n will_v fall_v out_o not_o to_o be_v christ_n true_a church_n argument_n 43_o the_o true_a church_n never_o have_v distinct_a mass_n whereof_o some_o be_v ordinary_a other_o proper_a for_o the_o time_n other_o proper_a for_o saint_n other_o for_o particular_a man_n devotion_n as_o for_o example_n for_o the_o election_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o take_v away_o schismatical_a contention_n for_o time_n of_o war_n for_o time_n of_o sickness_n and_o such_o other_o occasion_n but_o the_o rom._n the_o missale_n rom._n romish_a church_n have_v mass_n for_o all_o these_o cause_n and_o occasion_n argument_n 44_o the_o true_a church_n do_v never_o consecrate_v holy_a water_n and_o say_v exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la salis_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o exorcizo_fw-la te_fw-la creatura_fw-la aquae_fw-la etc._n etc._n ut_fw-la fias_fw-la aqua_fw-la exorcizata_fw-la ad_fw-la effugandam_fw-la omnem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la inimici_fw-la &_o ipsum_fw-la inimicum_fw-la eradicare_fw-la &_o explantare_fw-la valeas_fw-la cum_fw-la angelis_fw-la suis_fw-la apostaticis_fw-la it_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n therefore_o that_o do_v practice_v these_o exorcism_n argument_n 45_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v not_o retain_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o jew_n nor_o eat_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n for_o as_o the_o 5._o the_o 1._o cor._n 5._o apostle_n say_v pascha_fw-la nostrum_fw-la immolatus_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la but_o the_o rom._n the_o in_o fine_a missalis_fw-la rom._n romanist_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o missal_n do_v consecrate_v and_o eat_v a_o paschal_n lamb_n and_o pray_v thus_o deus_fw-la qui_fw-la per_fw-la famulum_fw-la tuum_fw-la moysem_fw-la in_o liberatione_n populi_fw-la tui_fw-la de_fw-la aegypto_n agnum_fw-la occidi_fw-la iussisti_fw-la in_o similitudinem_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o utrosque_fw-la post_n domorum_fw-la de_fw-la sanguine_fw-la huius_fw-la agni_fw-la perungi_fw-la praecepisti_fw-la ita_fw-la benedicere_fw-la &_o sanctificare_fw-la digneris_fw-la hanc_fw-la creaturam_fw-la carnis_fw-la quam_fw-la nos_fw-la famuli_fw-la tui_fw-la ad_fw-la laudem_fw-la tuam_fw-la sumere_fw-la desideramus_fw-la argument_n 46_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n never_o form_v any_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o of_o god_n divine_a essence_n neither_o do_v the_o same_o ever_o set_v up_o image_n in_o church_n to_o be_v worship_v with_o light_n incense_n kiss_v crouch_a prayer_n or_o other_o such_o like_a ceremony_n the_o second_o commandment_n direct_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o district_o command_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o unto_o they_o and_o that_o this_o commandment_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o worwip_n of_o image_n the_o first_o christian_n do_v well_o understand_v gentes_fw-la understand_v adverse_a gentes_fw-la arnobius_n say_v that_o they_o have_v no_o altar_n nor_o temple_n nor_o image_n worship_v in_o open_a show_n ne_fw-la simulachra_fw-la quidem_fw-la veneramur_fw-la say_v 7._o say_v contra_fw-la celsum_fw-la lib._n 7._o origen_n quip_n qui_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la ita_fw-la &_o incorporei_fw-la formam_fw-la nullam_fw-la effigiamus_fw-la 19_o effigiamus_fw-la lib._n 2._o divin_v instit_fw-la c._n 19_o lactantius_n doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v a_o image_n and_o when_o image_n and_o picture_n begin_v to_o creep_v into_o the_o church_n as_o a_o outward_a ornament_n the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n to_o prevent_v all_o inconvenience_n forbid_v picture_n in_o church_n placuit_fw-la say_v the_o 36._o the_o council_n elib_n c._n 36._o council_n picturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la debere_fw-la ne_fw-la quod_fw-la colitur_fw-la aut_fw-la adoratur_fw-la in_o parietibus_fw-la depingatur_fw-la such_o be_v then_o the_o religion_n of_o spain_n arnobius_n declare_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o wont_v to_o worship_v the_o cross_n cruces_fw-la say_v 8._o say_v adverse_a gentes_fw-la lib._n 8._o he_o nec_fw-la colimus_fw-la nec_fw-la optamus_fw-la nay_o 9_o nay_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o gregory_n the_o first_o himself_o albeit_o he_o will_v not_o have_v image_n break_v down_o yet_o will_v he_o not_o have_v they_o adore_v or_o worship_v and_o jonas_n aurelianensis_fw-la albeit_o a_o defender_n of_o image_n yet_o write_v thus_o of_o they_o creaturam_fw-la adorari_fw-la eíque_fw-la aliquid_fw-la divinae_fw-la seruitutis_fw-la impendi_fw-la proh_o nefas_fw-la ducimus_fw-la huiusque_fw-la sceleris_fw-la patratorem_fw-la detestandum_fw-la &_o anathematizandum_fw-la libera_fw-la voce_fw-la proclamumus_fw-la say_v 4._o say_v de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la imaginum_fw-la lib._n 4._o jonas_n but_o papist_n fall_v down_o before_o image_n and_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o the_o cross_n and_o crucifix_n neither_o do_v they_o only_o make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o worship_v they_o final_o they_o burn_v incense_v kneel_v and_o pray_v to_o stock_n and_o stone_n argument_n 47_o the_o true_a church_n do_v never_o pray_v or_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o baptism_n in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o common_a sort_n si_fw-mi orem_fw-la lingua_fw-la say_v the_o 14._o the_o 1._o cor._n 14._o apostle_n spiritus_fw-la meus_fw-la orat_fw-la mens_fw-la autem_fw-la mea_fw-la fine_fw-la fructu_fw-la est_fw-la he_o say_v it_o be_v fruitless_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v and_o reason_n teach_v we_o that_o this_o be_v true_a for_o if_o god_n respect_v not_o the_o move_n of_o our_o lip_n unless_o our_o heart_n accord_n with_o our_o tongue_n how_o can_v our_o heart_n accord_n when_o we_o understand_v not_o what_o our_o tongue_n utter_v final_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o that_o a_o know_v tongue_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o public_a prayer_n and_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o priest_n in_o all_o ancient_a liturgy_n and_o the_o
of_o one_o only_a massacre_n commit_v anno_fw-la 1572._o variis_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la per_fw-la illud_fw-la tempus_fw-la trucidata_fw-la fuisse_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o gallia_n and_o so_o extraordinary_a be_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o papist_n that_o they_o spare_v neither_o age_n sex_n nor_o quality_n vel_fw-la puberes_fw-la vel_fw-la impuberes_fw-la say_v he_o trucidati_fw-la sunt_fw-la neque_fw-la ullius_fw-la sexus_fw-la vel_fw-la aetatis_fw-la vel_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la habita_fw-la est_fw-la ratio_fw-la neither_o may_v we_o think_v that_o they_o have_v show_v less_o cruelty_n against_o christian_n in_o spain_n italy_n or_o germany_n as_o for_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n it_o have_v sufficient_a experience_n of_o the_o adversary_n extreme_a rage_n and_o cruelty_n by_o the_o short_a and_o bloody_a reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n and_o can_v any_o christian_n man_n notwithstanding_o endure_v to_o nourish_v up_o young_a wolf_n and_o tiger_n within_o our_o bosom_n the_o 17._o the_o apocal._n 17._o romish_a harlot_n be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o have_v her_o garment_n make_v red_a with_o the_o slaughter_n of_o innocent_n that_o therefore_o which_o optatus_n lib._n 2._o contr_n parmen_fw-la say_v of_o the_o donatist_n may_v with_o good_a reason_n be_v apply_v to_o papist_n jacerati_fw-la sunt_fw-la viri_fw-la tractatae_fw-la sunt_fw-la matronae_fw-la in_fw-la fantes_fw-la necati_fw-la abacti_fw-la partus_fw-la ecce_fw-la vestra_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la episcopis_fw-la ducibus_fw-la cruentis_fw-la morsibus_fw-la pasta_fw-la est_fw-la for_o by_o the_o romanistes_n many_o innocent_a christian_n have_v be_v torment_v and_o murder_v woman_n have_v be_v abuse_v infant_n have_v be_v cut_v in_o piece_n woman_n have_v be_v force_v to_o loose_v their_o child_n and_o they_o have_v feed_v themselves_o with_o cruelty_n and_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o agentes_fw-la have_v be_v ringleader_n in_o these_o cruel_a execution_n they_o be_v therefore_o profess_a enemy_n rather_o than_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n argument_n 53_o the_o catholic_a church_n never_o show_v more_o favour_n to_o jew_n and_o infidel_n then_o to_o christian_n that_o mislike_v the_o pomp_n tyranny_n and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n &_o manner_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o with_o her_o child_n the_o church_n deal_v like_o a_o kind_a mother_n most_o mild_o she_o correct_v they_o if_o they_o offend_v gent_o and_o instruct_v they_o careful_o contrariwise_o she_o avoid_v those_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v her_o admonition_n and_o converse_v not_o with_o they_o christian_n emperor_n caell●olis_n emperor_n hac_fw-la valitura_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr judaeis_n &_o caell●olis_n exclude_v the_o jew_n from_o all_o government_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o common_a wealth_n ibidem_fw-la wealth_n ibidem_fw-la they_o do_v also_o restrain_v their_o insolency_n with_o diverse_a sharp_a law_n the_o like_a templ_a like_a cod._n de_fw-fr paganis_fw-la sacrif_n &_o templ_a course_n also_o they_o take_v with_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n shut_v up_o their_o impious_a temple_n and_o forbid_v their_o sacrifice_n and_o idolatry_n but_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n do_v proceed_v by_o a_o contrary_a course_n for_o she_o massacer_v and_o murther_v christian_n resemble_v that_o unnatural_a whore_n that_o before_o solomon_n will_v have_v the_o child_n in_o controversy_n cut_v in_o piece_n but_o the_o jew_n and_o wicked_a atheist_n she_o nourish_v so_o they_o meddle_v not_o with_o the_o pope_n scuruinesse_n the_o pope_n by_o their_o inquisitor_n and_o executioner_n torment_v christian_n and_o receive_v tribute_n of_o jew_n that_o dwell_v quiet_o in_o rome_n 6._o rome_n onuphr_n in_o alexandr_n 6._o alexander_n the_o sixth_o receive_v turk_n and_o maranes_n into_o rome_n when_o the_o spaniard_n can_v not_o endure_v they_o in_o spain_n and_o all_o pope_n show_v more_o favour_n to_o turk_n than_o to_o such_o christian_n as_o come_v within_o the_o reach_n of_o the_o spanish_a or_o popish_a inquisition_n argument_n 54_o the_o true_a church_n never_o seek_v either_o by_o forgery_n and_o falsification_n of_o man_n writing_n or_o by_o lie_v and_o slander_v to_o advance_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n for_o truth_n be_v sufficient_a and_o strong_a enough_o of_o itself_o and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v support_v with_o falsehood_n and_o lie_n among_o ancient_a christian_n false_a witness_n and_o slanderer_n be_v so_o fare_v from_o be_v esteem_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v quite_o exclude_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o agatha_n c._n 27._o and_o council_n of_o eliberis_n in_o spain_n c._n 73._o &_o 74._o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n perceive_v that_o she_o can_v prevail_v by_o plain_a truth_n and_o honest_a deal_n go_v now_o about_o by_o suppress_v of_o truth_n and_o forge_v of_o counterfeit_a canon_n and_o false_a writing_n and_o by_o all_o manner_n of_o untrueth_n and_o slander_n to_o abuse_v the_o ignorant_a and_o simple_a multitude_n the_o scripture_n as_o much_o as_o she_o can_v she_o suppress_v in_o unknowen_a language_n and_o corrupt_v by_o make_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n authentical_a she_o devise_v and_o spread_v abroad_o false_a tradition_n and_o set_v out_o falsehood_n under_o the_o name_n of_o false_a canon_n and_o constitution_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n false_a canon_n of_o counsel_n counterfeit_a treatise_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o origen_n athanasius_n ambrose_n nazianzene_n hierome_n chrysostome_n augustine_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o father_n forge_a decretale_a epistle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o clement_n anacletus_fw-la euaristus_n and_o other_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v never_o acquaint_v either_o with_o such_o matter_n or_o such_o a_o stile_n of_o late_a time_n most_o audacious_o the_o pope_n agent_n have_v take_v unto_o they_o power_n to_o put_v out_o and_o to_o put_v in_o and_o to_o change_v what_o they_o listen_v in_o man_n writing_n of_o which_o forgery_n their_o expurgatorie_n index_n do_v plain_o convince_v they_o bellarmine_n he_o with_o all_o his_o wit_n wre_v scripture_n and_o father_n to_o serve_v his_o cause_n caesar_n baronius_n out_o of_o simeon_n metaphrastes_n jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la surius_n and_o such_o like_a fabulous_a legend_n have_v send_v we_o from_o rome_n whole_a cartlode_n of_o lie_n to_o help_v he_o alanus_n copus_n or_o rather_o harpsfield_n alfonsus_n ciacone_n and_o diverse_a popish_a companion_n have_v set_v out_o diverse_a notorious_a and_o ridiculous_a fable_n final_o to_o disgrace_v the_o truth_n by_o slanderous_a accusation_n of_o such_o as_o have_v show_v themselves_o forward_o in_o defence_n of_o it_o the_o popish_a faction_n have_v hire_v sanders_n robert_n parson_n creswel_n cope_n or_o rather_o harpesfield_n genebrard_n surius_n cochleus_n stapleton_n allen_n ribaldineira_n bolsecus_n laingius_n and_o other_o such_o like_a sycophant_n to_o rail_v aswell_o against_o prince_n as_o inferior_a minister_n can_v this_o company_n then_o be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o delight_v in_o lie_v slander_a rail_a cog_a and_o plain_a forge_n argument_n 55_o that_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n that_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o other_o than_o the_o true_a god_n that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n qui_fw-la sacrificat_fw-la dijs_fw-la eradicabitur_fw-la praeterquam_fw-la domino_fw-la soli_fw-la say_v 22._o say_v exod._n 22._o god_n to_o moses_n s._n 4._o s._n de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 10._o c._n 4._o augustine_n say_v that_o god_n only_o be_v to_o be_v serve_v with_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o to_o have_v the_o worship_n of_o latria_n do_v to_o he_o john_n apocalyp_n 22._o fall_v down_o ut_fw-la adoraret_fw-la ante_fw-la pedes_fw-la angeli_fw-la that_o be_v that_o he_o may_v worship_v before_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o angel_n but_o the_o angel_n forbid_v he_o and_o say_v vide_fw-la ne_fw-la feceris_fw-la see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o and_o afterward_o deum_fw-la adora_fw-la the_o papist_n also_o confess_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o sacrificium_fw-la say_v 2._o say_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 2._o bellar._n est_fw-la externa_fw-la oblatio_fw-la facta_fw-la soli_fw-la deo_fw-la he_o add_v superfluous_o the_o word_n externa_fw-la for_o if_o we_o may_v not_o offer_v external_a sacrifice_n to_o creature_n much_o less_o may_v we_o offer_v our_o internal_a devotion_n and_o sacrifice_n unto_o they_o but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o incense_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n not_o only_o to_o god_n but_o also_o to_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o to_o other_o saint_n in_o their_o litany_n they_o call_v upon_o the_o virgin_n mary_n upon_o the_o angel_n upon_o saint_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o they_o and_o yield_v they_o thanks_o for_o benefit_n receive_v neither_o do_v they_o offer_v incense_v only_o to_o saint_n but_o to_o their_o image_n either_o plant_v on_o the_o altar_n or_o near_o unto_o it_o final_o they_o confess_v that_o they_o say_v mass_n in_o the_o honour_n
of_o late_a time_n have_v not_o any_o that_o deserve_v to_o be_v entitle_v either_o bishop_n or_o priest_n where_o lest_o any_o fond_a caviller_n shall_v mistake_v i_o as_o a_o certain_a falsification_n certain_a a_o detection_n of_o untrueth_n and_o falsification_n disciple_n of_o antichrist_n have_v do_v of_o late_a i_o do_v give_v they_o to_o understand_v that_o my_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v the_o church_n that_o have_v minister_n or_o bishop_n faulty_a for_o life_n or_o defective_a in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n but_o only_o those_o that_o have_v bishop_n and_o priest_n without_o lawful_a ordination_n and_o that_o do_v not_o at_o all_o execute_v the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o a_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n and_o because_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n have_v only_o such_o priest_n and_o bishop_n as_o want_v lawful_a ordination_n and_o utter_o cease_v to_o execute_v pastoral_a function_n i_o say_v that_o the_o same_o can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n i_o say_v then_o that_o romish_a priest_n have_v no_o lawful_a ordination_n because_o they_o be_v ordain_v first_o by_o heretic_n by_o excommunicate_a and_o simoniacal_a person_n which_o the_o canon_n do_v prohibit_v to_o lay_v hand_n on_o any_o and_o disallow_v such_o as_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o they_o be_v simonicall_a person_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o conclave_n in_o election_n of_o pope_n by_o the_o compact_n make_v betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o such_o as_o he_o ordein_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o conscience_n of_o papal_a creature_n and_o public_a writing_n schism_n writing_n lib._n the_o schism_n theodorick_n a_o niem_n testify_v against_o boniface_n the_o 9_o and_o other_o and_o say_v that_o boniface_n sell_v the_o same_o benefice_n to_o diverse_a and_o when_o he_o lie_v a_o die_v buy_v and_o sell_v and_o say_v he_o shall_v do_v well_o if_o he_o have_v money_n vllerstone_n in_o his_o petition_n cry_v out_o of_o the_o simony_n of_o his_o time_n that_o be_v a_o cause_n also_o of_o the_o complaint_n of_o the_o german_n in_o their_o grievance_n venalia_fw-la nobis_fw-la say_v mantuan_n templa_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la altaria_fw-la sacra_fw-la coronae_fw-la ignis_fw-la thura_fw-la preces_fw-la coelum_fw-la est_fw-la venale_n deúsque_fw-la that_o they_o be_v heretic_n it_o shall_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o several_a heresy_n old_a and_o new_a which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v second_o they_o be_v not_o ordain_v lawful_o because_o they_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o teach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a as_o appeareth_z by_o their_o ordinib_fw-la their_o machab._n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr missis_fw-la episcop_n pro_fw-la ordinib_fw-la formulary_n of_o order_v priest_n 9_o priest_n lib._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la ord_n c._n 9_o bellarmine_n likewise_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o due_a form_n of_o order_v priest_n respondeo_fw-la say_v he_o sacerdotes_fw-la ordinari_fw-la cum_fw-la illis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offerendi_fw-la this_o ordination_n i_o prove_v to_o be_v unlawful_a first_o because_o it_o contain_v no_o commission_n for_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o apostolical_a or_o priestly_a function_n and_o next_o because_o it_o give_v they_o a_o office_n of_o sacrifice_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a which_o be_v more_o than_o belong_v to_o their_o charge_n or_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n three_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o bishop_n that_o have_v themselves_o no_o due_a ordination_n be_v send_v abroad_o by_o antichrist_n rather_o to_o suppress_v the_o truth_n then_o to_o teach_v the_o truth_n now_o every_o man_n well_o understand_v that_o no_o man_n can_v give_v order_n but_o such_o as_o have_v receive_v order_n final_o they_o be_v most_o of_o they_o uncapable_a of_o ministerial_a function_n and_o can_v neither_o teach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n due_o and_o if_o they_o be_v able_a yet_o do_v they_o not_o teach_v god_n people_n but_o rather_o by_o their_o mass_n and_o confession_n draw_v they_o to_o superstition_n and_o disloialty_n that_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v both_o by_o the_o same_o and_o other_o reason_n first_o no_o heretic_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v other_o but_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n ergo_fw-la the_o first_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o deny_v the_o second_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o diverse_a argument_n in_o his_o proper_a place_n second_o we_o have_v declare_v and_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v simoniacal_a person_n of_o which_o it_o also_o follow_v that_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v pastor_n three_o antichrist_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o head_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n i_o have_v declare_v in_o my_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n four_o he_o that_o be_v no_o bishop_n can_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n but_o i_o have_v declare_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o bishop_n and_o it_o be_v evident_a for_o that_o 3._o that_o 1._o tim._n 3._o episcopatus_fw-la be_v opus_fw-la but_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n either_o in_o teach_v or_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n further_o bishop_n as_o cyprian_n diverse_o declare_v be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o pope_n succéede_v caesar_n in_o the_o government_n of_o rome_n rather_o than_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o other_o romish_a bishop_n they_o rather_o kill_v christ_n sheep_n and_o massacre_v his_o lamb_n than_o feed_v they_o final_o romish_a bishop_n albeit_o they_o be_v after_o a_o sort_n send_v to_o teach_v and_o administer_v sacrament_n yet_o most_o of_o they_o be_v uncapable_a of_o that_o charge_n and_o all_o leave_v the_o office_n of_o teach_v to_o a_o pack_n of_o loud_a mouth_a monk_n and_o babble_a friar_n think_v that_o too_o base_a a_o office_n for_o their_o great_a and_o high_a estate_n but_o have_v romish_a priest_n and_o bishop_n any_o mission_n or_o ordination_n yet_o be_v the_o same_o very_a defective_a and_o diverse_a from_o the_o grave_a form_n practise_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o neither_o be_v such_o regard_n have_v of_o the_o capacity_n and_o ability_n of_o the_o person_n choose_v to_o this_o function_n but_o that_o often_o time_n boy_n and_o infamous_a person_n be_v call_v to_o this_o charge_n neither_o be_v the_o solemnity_n prescribe_v in_o the_o canon_n observe_v nor_o do_v either_o the_o priest_n or_o bishop_n teach_v true_a doctrine_n and_o sincere_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o do_v they_o final_o attend_v that_o office_n and_o execute_v that_o work_n whereto_o they_o be_v call_v if_o therefore_o the_o romish_a priest_n and_o bishop_n have_v no_o due_a ordination_n or_o call_n then_o be_v not_o the_o papist_n the_o true_a church_n if_o their_o ordination_n be_v imperfect_a and_o faulty_a than_o such_o be_v the_o popish_a church_n as_o their_o popish_a ordination_n of_o minister_n be_v that_o be_v faulty_a defective_a and_o imperfect_a argument_n 61_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o adhere_v to_o antichrist_n our_o saviour_n christ_n speak_v of_o his_o sheep_n 10._o sheep_n john_n 10._o say_v they_o will_v not_o follow_v a_o stranger_n but_o will_v fly_v from_o he_o neither_o do_v antichrist_n seduce_v any_o burr_n such_o as_o perish_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o 2._o thess_n 2._o but_o the_o romish_a church_n adher_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v declare_v manifest_o to_o be_v antichrist_n both_o by_o his_o doctrine_n &_o by_o his_o manner_n &_o by_o the_o form_n &_o circumstance_n of_o his_o reign_n and_o diverse_a argument_n which_o because_o i_o will_v not_o draw_v out_o this_o discourse_n into_o length_n i_o will_v desire_v the_o learned_a to_o read_v in_o my_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n and_o our_o adversary_n to_o answer_v if_o they_o hold_v contrary_a robert_n parson_n shall_v also_o do_v well_o to_o answer_v such_o argument_n as_o i_o use_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o wardword_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n argument_n 62_o as_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v figure_v by_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o the_o malignant_a church_n of_o antichrist_n be_v figure_v and_o represent_v partly_o by_o babylon_n apocalyps_n 18._o and_o partly_o by_o the_o purple_a whore_n apocalyp_n 17._o that_o ride_v on_o a_o beast_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o have_v a_o cup_n of_o gold_n in_o her_o hand_n full_a of_o all_o abomination_n and_o spiritual_a &_o carnal_a filthiness_n if_o then_o the_o state_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v represent_v by_o this_o purple_a harlot_n and_o by_o babylon_n
idolatry_n and_o who_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v by_o scripture_n most_o certain_a tradition_n counsel_n father_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o which_o teach_v the_o narrow_a way_n and_o make_v subject_n obedient_a and_o be_v sure_a to_o continue_v but_o neither_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n catholic_a nor_o apostolic_a which_o embrace_v uncerteine_a tradition_n and_o apocryphal_a scripture_n with_o equal_a affection_n to_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o which_o receive_v all_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n albeit_o they_o contain_v doctrine_n neither_o apostolical_a nor_o general_a second_o it_o will_v be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o show_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n abhor_v neither_o heresy_n nor_o idolatry_n nor_o novelty_n three_o in_o diverse_a discourse_n against_o bellarmine_n i_o have_v show_v that_o popish_a doctrine_n have_v neither_o ground_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n nor_o father_n thereby_o also_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o popish_a tradition_n be_v most_o vain_a uncerteine_a and_o superstitious_a four_o the_o way_n which_o that_o church_n teach_v be_v broad_a and_o easy_a for_o what_o be_v more_o easy_a than_o to_o hear_v mass_n and_o to_o eat_v fish_n and_o to_o confess_v sin_n and_o to_o observe_v diverse_a external_a ceremony_n and_o yet_o by_o these_o small_a thing_n papist_n hope_v to_o be_v save_v fift_o we_o find_v that_o all_o the_o rebellion_n of_o england_n ireland_n and_o france_n have_v whole_o proceed_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seditious_a jebusite_n and_o canaanite_n and_o mass_n priest_n neither_o will_n ever_o rebellion_n be_v root_v out_o unless_o the_o tyrannical_a usurpation_n of_o pope_n be_v repress_v and_o their_o parasite_n teach_v to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o their_o liege_n prince_n six_o what_o certainty_n in_o judgement_n can_v the_o papist_n have_v that_o depend_v upon_o the_o resolution_n of_o blind_a unlearned_a and_o wicked_a pope_n final_o we_o see_v antichrist_n to_o be_v reveal_v and_o the_o city_n of_o babylon_n to_o fall_v to_o confusion_n who_o then_o do_v not_o expect_v and_o believe_v the_o utter_a ruin_n and_o desolation_n of_o antichrist_n state_n further_o bristol_n tell_v we_o that_o every_o church_n that_o be_v rise_v after_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o religion_n and_o go_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o from_o apostolic_a doctrine_n and_o be_v not_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n nor_o ever_o visible_a and_o which_o be_v not_o the_o teacher_n of_o all_o divine_a truth_n and_o the_o undoubted_a mother_n of_o christ_n child_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v now_o visible_a in_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n in_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o pope_n chamber_n in_o popish_a prelate_n sacrifice_v priest_n monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n and_o their_o officer_n and_o adherent_n who_o faith_n be_v build_v on_o popish_a decretal_n and_o mince_v scholastical_a distinction_n as_o fine_a weave_v as_o any_o spider_n web_n rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o first_o plant_v of_o religion_n and_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n creep_v out_o by_o little_a and_o little_a out_o of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n for_o apostolical_a doctrine_n embrace_v apostatical_a and_o light_a fancy_n and_o tradition_n and_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o man_n belly_n and_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v depart_v from_o christ_n and_o have_v make_v war_n upon_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o same_o also_o whore_n be_v open_o maintain_v &_o cutthroat_n by_o reward_n incite_v to_o kill_v and_o poison_v prince_n and_o a_o way_n to_o all_o perjury_n and_o vice_n by_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n open_v how_o then_o can_v any_o call_v this_o a_o communion_n of_o saint_n final_o he_o that_o expect_v truth_n at_o the_o pope_n hand_n shall_v be_v gull_v with_o fable_n and_o he_o that_o call_v rome_n a_o mother_n can_v be_v content_a for_o gain_v to_o call_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o mother_n of_o error_n his_o mother_n argument_n 70_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n never_o allow_v the_o decretal_n of_o pope_n or_o the_o extravagants_n or_o rule_v of_o chancery_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o proceed_v but_o in_o these_o law_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v diverse_a rule_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n and_o thereby_o govern_v her_o proceed_n argument_n 71_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n clerk_n be_v not_o exempt_a from_o the_o subjection_n of_o prince_n the_o apostle_n say_v let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o clerk_n be_v quite_v and_o exempt_v from_o the_o princess_n power_n as_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o that_o argument_n by_o the_o pope_n canon_n and_o all_o his_o wit_n endevour_v to_o prove_v argument_n 72_o the_o true_a church_n never_o baptize_v bell_n nor_o hold_v monk_n cowl_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o baptism_n but_o the_o popish_a church_n as_o the_o 51._o the_o gravam_fw-la 51._o german_n in_o their_o grievance_n declare_v baptize_v bell_n and_o compare_v the_o entrance_n into_o monkish_a profession_n with_o baptism_n argument_n 73_o final_o never_o be_v christ_n church_n or_o any_o part_n of_o christ_n church_n within_o any_o kingdom_n govern_v by_o a_o archpriest_n and_o certain_a seditious_a jebusite_n mass_n priest_n and_o such_o like_a vermin_n howsoever_o than_o they_o deny_v it_o in_o other_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o papist_n of_o england_n be_v not_o member_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o rather_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n chap._n ii_o that_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n refuse_v be_v mere_a novelty_n and_o late_o devise_v fancy_n if_o when_o the_o papist_n do_v recommend_v unto_o we_o their_o old_a religion_n they_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n jesus_n which_o the_o apostle_n first_o teach_v and_o which_o the_o apostolical_a and_o most_o ancient_a christian_n receive_v and_o deliver_v to_o posterity_n we_o shall_v not_o much_o contend_v with_o he_o for_o that_o be_v the_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v not_o vary_v in_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o apostle_n cré_v and_o other_o cré_v either_o set_v out_o by_o athanasius_n or_o the_o most_o ancient_a general_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o deny_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v express_v or_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n but_o when_o they_o talk_v of_o old_a religion_n they_o mean_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v either_o establish_v by_o late_a pope_n or_o take_v up_o by_o lewd_a custom_n and_o uncerteine_a tradition_n the_o which_o though_o it_o seem_v to_o some_o ancient_a yet_o in_o very_a truth_n be_v new_a and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o religion_n that_o be_v first_o deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n neither_o do_v it_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o old_a religion_n for_o as_o ignatius_n say_v philadelph_n say_v epist_n ad_fw-la philadelph_n sometime_o antiquitas_fw-la mea_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la so_o we_o may_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o top_n of_o our_o ancestry_n &_o that_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v both_o ancient_a &_o most_o true_a id_fw-la verius_fw-la quod_fw-la prius_fw-la say_v martion_n say_v lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la martion_n tertullian_n id_fw-la prius_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la id_fw-la ab_fw-la initio_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_fw-la if_o they_o the_o papist_n as_o they_o brag_v can_v prove_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n then_o will_v we_o indeed_o confess_v it_o be_v ancient_a if_o they_o can_v than_o we_o must_v say_v to_o they_o as_o ocean_n as_o epist_n 65._o ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n hierome_n say_v to_o one_o in_o his_o time_n cur_n proffer_v in_o medium_n say_v he_o quod_fw-la petrus_n &_o paulus_n edere_fw-la noluerunt_fw-la why_o do_v they_o produce_v article_n of_o faith_n unknowen_a to_o the_o apostle_n nay_o why_o do_v they_o teach_v we_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o in_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unheard_a of_o will_v they_o have_v that_o account_v old_a which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v long_o after_o the_o apostle_n never_o know_v nor_o the_o ancient_a church_n ever_o receive_v they_o will_v so_o 35._o so_o contra._n haeres_fw-la c._n 35._o but_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n do_v call_v he_o a_o true_a catholic_a that_o do_v only_o believe_v and_o hold_v whatsoever_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n do_v universal_o believe_v quicquid_fw-la say_v he_o universaliter_fw-la antiquitus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la tenuisse_fw-la cognoverit_fw-la id_fw-la solum_fw-la sibi_fw-la tenendum_fw-la credendumque_fw-la decernit_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n will_v hold_v all_o the_o religion_n which_o now_o
they_o profess_v their_o religion_n will_v never_o prove_v ancient_a nor_o catholic_a not_o ancient_a for_o that_o diverse_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n which_o they_o hold_v be_v new_a and_o unheard_a of_o in_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n argument_n 1_o first_o they_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n be_v no_o perfect_a canon_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o this_o doctrine_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o with_o equal_a affection_n embrace_v unwritten_a tradition_n and_o canonical_a scripture_n 12._o scripture_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 12._o bellarmine_n say_v that_o scripture_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n and_o not_o a_o whole_a rule_n dico_fw-la secundò_fw-la say_v he_o scripturam_fw-la etsi_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la facta_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la regula_fw-la fidei_fw-la esse_fw-la tamen_fw-la regulam_fw-la fidei_fw-la non_fw-la totalem_fw-la sed_fw-la partialem_fw-la 1._o partialem_fw-la de_fw-fr doctrine_n princip_n li._n 7._o c._n 1._o stapleton_n beside_o scripture_n frame_v a_o new_a rule_n which_o he_o call_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v new_a and_o contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n and_o father_n the_o 3._o the_o 2._o tim._n 3._o apostle_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a and_o furnish_v for_o every_o good_a work_n he_o teach_v we_o also_o that_o they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n likewise_o the_o father_n testify_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a canon_n sufficiunt_fw-la sanctae_fw-la ac_fw-la divinitus_fw-la inspitatae_fw-la scripturae_fw-la say_v idola_fw-la say_v lib._n contr_n idola_fw-la athanasius_n ad_fw-la veritatis_fw-la indicationem_fw-la basil_n in_o serm_n de_fw-fr fid_fw-we confess_v say_v it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o pride_n either_o to_o reject_v scripture_n or_o to_o bring_v in_o matter_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n he_o mean_v in_o question_n of_o faith_n cum_fw-la habeamus_fw-la omnium_fw-la exactissimam_fw-la trutinam_fw-la gnomonem_fw-la &_o regulam_fw-la divinarum_fw-la legum_fw-la assertionem_fw-la say_v 13._o say_v in_o 2._o ad_fw-la corinth_n homil_n 13._o chrysostome_n oro_fw-la vos_fw-la omnes_fw-la ut_fw-la relinquatis_fw-la quid_fw-la huic_fw-la vel_fw-la illi_fw-la videatur_fw-la &_o the_o his_o a_o scripture_n haec_fw-la omne_fw-la inquirite_fw-la tertullian_n write_v against_o hermogenes_n say_v that_o he_o adore_v the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n and_o saint_n 9_o saint_n lib._n 2._o the_o doctr_n christian_n c._n 9_o augustine_n teach_v that_o all_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n be_v find_v in_o scripture_n clear_o propound_v to_o conclude_v this_o point_n most_o derogatory_n it_o be_v to_o god_n divine_a wisdom_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v suppose_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o imperfect_a canon_n or_o half_o a_o rule_n or_o maim_a doctrine_n as_o the_o papi_v late_o have_v begin_v to_o teach_v argument_n 2_o they_o have_v make_v the_o book_n of_o tobia_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la machabey_v and_o such_o fragment_n of_o book_n as_o be_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n and_o not_o in_o hebrew_n equal_a to_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o other_o prophet_n and_o to_o the_o writing_n also_o of_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o common_a doctrine_n now_o of_o the_o jebusite_n and_o papist_n but_o new_a and_o no_o way_n approve_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n for_o these_o book_n be_v never_o allow_v by_o any_o prophet_n or_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n before_o christ_n time_n nor_o do_v the_o ancient_a father_n allow_v they_o gregory_n in_o his_o moral_n lib._n 19_o c._n 16._o direct_o affirm_v the_o book_n of_o machabeis_n not_o to_o be_v canonical_a sicut_fw-la ergo_fw-la judith_n &_o tobiae_n &_o machabaeorum_n libros_fw-la legit_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la say_v solomon_n say_v in_o proverb_n solomon_n hierome_n sed_fw-la eos_fw-la inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la he_o say_v paralip_n say_v in_o praefat_fw-la in_o lib._n paralip_n also_o where_o controversy_n be_v concern_v apocryphal_a writing_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o hebrew_n neither_o do_v augustine_n so_o make_v they_o canonical_a as_o he_o repute_v they_o equal_a to_o other_o scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n lib._n 18._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 36._o &_o conrra_fw-la gaudent_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 23._o nay_o sixtus_n senensis_n albeit_o he_o make_v all_o these_o book_n canonical_a yet_o do_v he_o not_o give_v to_o all_o equal_a authority_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v any_o ancient_a writer_n that_o allow_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n if_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o have_v all_o man_n see_v that_o they_o have_v innovate_v the_o very_a canon_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n argument_n 3_o they_o have_v also_o make_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n authentical_a contrary_a not_o only_o to_o reason_n see_v it_o differ_v not_o only_o from_o the_o original_a book_n but_o also_o be_v contrary_a to_o itself_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o edition_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n and_o clement_n the_o 8._o but_o also_o to_o antiquity_n which_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n and_o augustine_n always_o prefer_v the_o original_a book_n in_o matter_n of_o difference_n before_o translation_n argument_n 4_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 4._o trent_n sess_n 4._o determine_v that_o no_o man_n shall_v interpret_v they_o against_o that_o sense_n and_o meaning_n which_o the_o holy_a mother_n church_n hold_v to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a meaning_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n end_n by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o this_o act_n be_v altogether_o new_a for_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o ever_o the_o eastern_a or_o african_a church_n be_v forbid_v to_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n be_v tie_v to_o expound_v scripture_n after_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nay_o we_o find_v that_o no_o interpretation_n be_v more_o absurd_a than_o they_o or_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o for_o example_n may_v appear_v in_o these_o two_o point_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n we_o be_v express_o forbid_v to_o make_v grave_v image_n to_o worship_v they_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n interprete_v these_o word_n so_o galant_o that_o man_n may_v both_o make_v grave_v image_n and_o worship_v they_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v bibiten_v ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la but_o the_o romanistes_n turn_v it_o contrary_n and_o will_v have_v no_o communicantes_fw-la to_o drink_n of_o the_o lord_n cup_n but_o the_o priest_n only_o argument_n 5_o in_o time_n past_o romana_fw-la past_o dist_n 15._o c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la christian_n be_v forbid_v to_o read_v the_o legend_n of_o quiricus_n &_o julitta_n and_o george_n the_o 8._o book_n of_o clement_n the_o act_n of_o tecla_n and_o paul_n the_o book_n of_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o such_o like_a the_o act_n also_o of_o siluestre_n bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o writing_n concern_v the_o invention_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n and_o of_o the_o head_n of_o saint_n john_n baptist_n be_v doubt_v of_o but_o now_o these_o legend_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o romish_a tradition_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n place_v in_o equal_a rank_n with_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n be_v it_o not_o then_o apparent_a that_o the_o very_a ground_n of_o romish_a tradition_n be_v lay_v upon_o fable_n and_o of_o late_a invention_n argument_n 6_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a faith_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o scripture_n as_o be_v evident_a for_o that_o the_o city_n and_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n christ_n jesus_n be_v the_o corner_n stone_n 1._o stone_n lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 1._o jeremy_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n deliver_v the_o same_o in_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o now_o bellar._n teachech_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o stapleton_n doubt_v not_o to_o praefat_fw-la to_o de_fw-fr doctr_n princip_n in_o praefat_fw-la say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o chief_a subject_n of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n and_o 19_o and_o cancanonicis_n do_v 19_o gratian_n like_o a_o shameless_a fellow_n under_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n augustine_n doubt_v not_o to_o reckon_v the_o pope_n decretale_a epistle_n among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n argument_n 7_o stapleton_n
relect_a princip_n doctrine_n man_n entreat_v of_o the_o sure_a ground_n and_o principle_n of_o christian_a religion_n do_v leave_v the_o scripture_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o reckon_n but_o athanasius_n in_o synopsi_n do_v call_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o anchor_n and_o stay_v of_o our_o faith_n 1._o faith_n lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 1._o irenaeus_n say_v that_o the_o apostle_n first_o preach_v and_o afterward_o deliver_v the_o gospel_n in_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o church_n say_v matth._n say_v homil._n 6._o in_o matth._n chrysostome_n be_v jerusalem_n who_o foundation_n be_v place_v upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o they_o do_v consent_v all_o true_a catholic_n condemn_v the_o error_n of_o the_o papist_n false_o call_v catholic_n argument_n 5_o the_o papist_n call_v the_o scripture_n a_o kill_a letter_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o remish_a annotation_n upon_o the_o 3._o chap._n of_o the_o 2._o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n as_o if_o god_n have_v deliver_v his_o will_n in_o writing_n to_o the_o intent_n to_o kill_v they_o that_o read_v they_o they_o 5._o they_o annot._n rhemens_n in_o joan._n c._n 5._o slander_v they_o also_o as_o if_o they_o be_v dark_a and_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v final_o they_o disgrace_v they_o matth._n they_o ibidem_fw-la in_o c._n 4._o matth._n say_v that_o the_o devil_n and_o heretic_n allege_v scripture_n other_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n inken_fw-mi divinity_n and_o matter_n of_o strife_n and_o contention_n and_o condemn_v the_o read_n of_o scripture_n as_o pernicious_a and_o hurtful_a but_o true_a catholic_n have_v always_o a_o reverend_a regard_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o direction_n of_o holy_a life_n 2._o life_n lib._n 3._o advers_a hare_n c_o 2._o irenaeus_n say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n to_o fall_v into_o dislike_n of_o they_o and_o to_o accuse_v they_o the_o papist_n therefore_o in_o this_o point_n be_v rather_o heretic_n then_o catholic_n argument_n 6_o the_o papist_n among_o canonical_a scripture_n reckon_v the_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la decretales_fw-la epistòlae_fw-la connumerantur_fw-la say_v the_o rubrike_n do_v 19_o c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la and_o this_o gratian_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v by_o a_o place_n of_o saint_n augustine_n which_o he_o there_o falsifi_v this_o also_o seem_v by_o gregory_n the_o 13._o to_o be_v approve_v in_o his_o edition_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o any_o papist_n will_v deny_v that_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o man_n but_o ancient_a catholic_n never_o have_v the_o decretal_n in_o this_o estimation_n nor_o think_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n or_o ground_n of_o faith_n or_o infallible_a as_o the_o papist_n call_v they_o nay_o thomas_n aquinas_n albeit_o no_o catholic_a 1._o catholic_a 2._o 2._o q._n 1._o art_n 1._o confess_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v the_o first_o truth_n or_o god_n himself_o and_o not_o only_o cyprian_a take_v exception_n against_o cornelius_n ireney_n against_o victor_n the_o council_n of_o carthage_n against_o sozimus_n but_o also_o diverse_a catholic_n against_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o diverse_a pope_n argument_n 7_o the_o conventicle_n of_o 4._o of_o sess_n 4._o trent_n unto_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v add_v not_o only_o the_o book_n of_o tobias_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o of_o the_o machabey_v but_o also_o such_o addition_n as_o be_v find_v in_o the_o old_a latin_a translation_n albeit_o they_o be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o original_a text_n and_o these_o they_o place_n in_o equal_a rank_n and_o degree_n with_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o proverb_n of_o solomon_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o paulinus_n and_o in_o his_o general_a prologue_n before_o the_o bible_n which_o he_o call_v prologum_fw-la galeatum_fw-la of_o athanasius_n in_o synopsi_fw-la of_o epiphanius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o weight_n and_o measure_n of_o melito_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n can_v 59_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n can_v 84._o and_o diverse_a other_o neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o augustine_n lib._n 2._o the_o doctr_n christ_n c._n 8._o and_o a_o certain_a council_n of_o carthage_n do_v reckon_v the_o book_n of_o tobias_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o machabey_v among_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o by_o canonical_a scripture_n they_o understand_v such_o book_n as_o by_o order_n of_o the_o church_n be_v read_v public_o and_o common_o join_v together_o in_o one_o book_n and_o be_v rather_o for_o some_o part_n a_o canon_n and_o rule_n of_o manner_n then_o of_o faith_n for_o that_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o the_o council_n that_o speak_v rather_o of_o the_o book_n as_o they_o be_v read_v then_o as_o they_o be_v authentical_a ruffian_n speak_v of_o these_o book_n say_v legi_fw-la voluerunt_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la proferri_fw-la ad_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la fidei_fw-la ex_fw-la his_fw-la confirmandam_fw-la augustine_n also_o lib._n the_o civet_n dei_fw-la 18._o c._n 36._o speak_v proper_o of_o canonical_a scripture_n exclude_v the_o book_n of_o the_o machabey_v though_o some_o church_n receive_v they_o for_o canonical_a athanasius_n in_o synopsi_n account_v the_o 3._o and_o 4._o of_o esdras_n as_o canonical_a as_o these_o book_n and_o sixtus_n senensis_fw-la do_v not_o accounpt_v they_o equal_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n final_o not_o one_o catholic_a writer_n can_v be_v produce_v that_o allow_v the_o fragment_n and_o addition_n that_o in_o the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n be_v add_v to_o the_o original_a text_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o papist_n then_o catholic_n that_o have_v no_o catholic_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n argument_n 8_o papist_n allow_v no_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n against_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v contra_fw-la eum_fw-la sensum_fw-la 4._o sensum_fw-la council_n trid._n sess_v 4._o quem_fw-la tenuit_fw-la &_o tenet_fw-la sancta_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la but_o true_a catholic_n never_o allow_v such_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v make_v as_o for_o example_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n beléeve_v that_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v to_o peter_n pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la give_v power_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o depose_v prince_n again_o where_o god_n say_v to_o hieremy_n chap._n 1._o ecce_fw-la constitui_fw-la te_fw-la hodie_fw-la super_fw-la gentes_fw-la &_o regna_fw-la boniface_n the_o 8._o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v all_o earthly_a prince_n and_o these_o word_n ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladij_fw-la hic_fw-la he_o ob_v he_o c._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v expound_v so_o as_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v two_o sword_n give_v to_o he_o the_o word_n deus_fw-la fecit_fw-la duo_fw-la magna_fw-la luminaria_fw-la the_o pope_n interprete_v so_o as_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v mean_v by_o thy_o son_n and_o the_o emperor_n by_o the_o moon_n and_o as_o if_o the_o pope_n do_v so_o far_o excel_v the_o emperor_n as_o the_o son_n be_v great_a than_o the_o moon_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la they_o expound_v thus_o drink_v not_o all_o of_o this_o and_o these_o word_n scrutamini_fw-la scripturas_fw-la they_o interpret_v as_o if_o lie_v man_n may_v not_o search_v the_o scripture_n without_o licence_n of_o the_o inquisitor_n infinite_a such_o like_a interpretation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v devise_v but_o all_o contrary_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n argument_n 9_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n do_v adjudge_v the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v authentical_a and_o prefer_v it_o before_o the_o original_a text_n but_o catholic_n have_v always_o prefer_v the_o original_a text_n before_o the_o latin_a translation_n saint_n damasum_fw-la saint_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la suniam_fw-la &_o fretel_v &_o ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la hierome_n say_v that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o matter_n of_o doubt_n concern_v the_o translation_n we_o must_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o hebrew_n as_o to_o the_o fountain_n and_o in_o the_o new_a to_o the_o greek_a ad_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la hebrea_n &_o graeca_n à_fw-la latinis_fw-la recurratur_fw-la say_v 10._o say_v lib._n 2._o the_o doctr_n chr._n c._n 10._o augustine_n hilary_n also_o write_v upon_o the_o 118._o psalm_n confess_v that_o the_o latin_a translation_n can_v satisfy_v the_o reader_n
body_n be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n the_o apostle_n peter_n also_o act._n 3._o declare_v that_o the_o heaven_n must_v contain_v he_o until_o the_o time_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v restore_v and_o this_o the_o ancient_a father_n which_o the_o adversary_n will_v not_o deny_v to_o have_v be_v good_a catholic_n do_v clear_o express_v according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n say_v matth._n say_v tractat._n 33._o in_o matth._n origen_n he_o be_v not_o absent_a from_o we_o but_o he_o be_v absent_a according_a to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o his_o body_n which_o he_o take_v saint_n 24._o saint_n lib._n 10._o in_o luc._n 24._o ambrose_n say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o seek_v christ_n either_o on_o the_o earth_n or_o in_o the_o earth_n or_o after_o the_o flesh_n if_o we_o mean_v to_o find_v he_o saint_n joan._n saint_n tractat._n 50._o in_o joan._n augustine_n say_v he_o have_v carry_v his_o body_n into_o heaven_n although_o he_o have_v not_o withdraw_v his_o majesty_n from_o the_o world_n evangel_n world_n homil._n 21._o in_o evangel_n gregory_n the_o first_o also_o do_v plain_o affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o here_o on_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o flesh_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n say_v eutych_n say_v lib._n 4._o contr_n eutych_n vigilius_n write_v against_o eutyches_n when_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n sure_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o now_o because_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n certain_o it_o be_v not_o on_o earth_n neither_o do_v ever_o any_o catholic_a father_n teach_v otherwise_o be_v the_o papist_n then_o catholic_n trow_v you_o that_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a father_n and_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n and_o upon_o every_o altar_n at_o one_o time_n and_o do_v you_o call_v they_o catholic_n that_o affime_v that_o christ_n true_a body_n proper_o may_v not_o only_o be_v touch_v and_o receive_v into_o man_n mouth_n but_o also_o devour_v of_o dog_n and_o mouse_n and_o other_o beast_n that_o eat_v consecrate_v host_n argument_n 18_o all_o true_a catholic_n firm_o believe_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v they_o for_o christ_n sake_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n according_a to_o these_o two_o article_n of_o the_o créed_a i_o believe_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 6._o god_n have_v promise_v and_o swear_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v firm_a comfort_n and_o saint_n 5._o saint_n 1_o john_n 5._o john_n say_v these_o thing_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o whosoever_o beléeve_v not_o this_o as_o ibidem_fw-la as_o ibidem_fw-la he_o testify_v make_v god_n a_o liar_n the_o apostle_n 5._o apostle_n rom._n 5._o paul_n say_v that_o he_o that_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n have_v peace_n with_o god_n but_o what_o peace_n can_v we_o have_v unless_o we_o believe_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v and_o that_o assure_o we_o shall_v obtain_v eternal_a life_n the_o sacrament_n also_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o every_o christian_a be_v seal_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n for_o by_o baptism_n we_o put_v on_o christ_n that_o be_v we_o be_v make_v member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o partaker_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n and_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v break_v for_o every_o one_o that_o be_v a_o worthy_a receiver_n this_o doctrine_n be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o example_n of_o abraham_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n of_o abraham_n we_o 4._o we_o rom._n 4._o read_v that_o he_o doubt_v not_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n the_o apostle_n 8._o apostle_n rom._n 8._o say_v that_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v he_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o this_o assurance_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n the_o catholic_a father_n teach_v us._n si_fw-mi iustus_fw-la es_fw-la &_o fide_fw-la vivis_fw-la say_v mortalit_fw-la say_v serm._n 4._o de_fw-fr mortalit_fw-la cyprian_n si_fw-la verè_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la credis_fw-la cur_n non_fw-fr cum_fw-la christo_fw-la futurus_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr domini_fw-la pollicitatione_n securus_fw-la amplecteris_fw-la ibidem_fw-la amplecteris_fw-la ibidem_fw-la again_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o waver_v or_o doubt_v for_o that_o god_n have_v promise_v we_o immortality_n saint_n dom_n saint_n serm._n 2●…_n de_fw-fr verb._n dom_n augustine_n write_v upon_o these_o word_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o say_v it_o be_v faith_n and_o not_o pride_n to_o acknowledge_v what_o we_o have_v receive_v anno●…_n receive_v serm._n 2._o the_o anno●…_n bernard_n say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o promise_n but_o by_o god_n favour_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v this_o in_o we_o that_o we_o believe_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o do_v all_o true_a catholic_n believe_v how_o then_o can_v the_o papist_n be_v catholic_n that_o will_v have_v man_n only_o to_o hope_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n and_o that_o not_o without_o doubt_v or_o what_o be_v we_o to_o hope_v of_o the_o 6._o the_o sess_n 6._o doctor_n of_o trent_n that_o provounce_v they_o accurse_v that_o shall_v say_v that_o a_o man_n must_v certain_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o final_o how_o shall_v we_o believe_v that_o those_o be_v true_a beléever_n that_o teach_v christian_n not_o to_o believe_v remission_n of_o sin_n or_o eternal_a life_n but_o to_o doubt_v of_o both_o argument_n 19_o all_o true_a catholic_n believe_v that_o the_o faithful_a present_o upon_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n be_v happy_a and_o enter_v into_o joy_n that_o never_o shall_v have_v end_n as_o the_o wicked_a and_o unbeléever_n be_v present_o to_o enter_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o begin_v to_o suffer_v endless_a pain_n these_o shall_v go_v into_o everlasting_a pain_n and_o the_o righteous_a shall_v present_o possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n prepare_v for_o they_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 25._o the_o 8._o the_o rom._n 8._o apostle_n do_v also_o plain_o testify_v that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o those_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v likewise_o 14._o likewise_o apocal._n 14._o pronounce_v they_o bless_v that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v add_v for_o that_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n and_o this_o likewise_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a father_n 7._o father_n ecclesiast_fw-la hierarch_n c._n 7._o dionyse_o say_v that_o the_o godly_a when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o life_n shall_v rest_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o signify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o grief_n nor_o sadness_n nor_o sigh_v 75._o sigh_v quaest_n 75._o justine_n martyr_n hold_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o good_a man_n shall_v present_o be_v carry_v into_o paradise_n both_o 2._o both_o lib._n 1._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o irenaeus_n and_o mortalit_fw-la and_o serm._n de_fw-fr mortalit_fw-la cyprian_n likewise_o make_v only_o two_o sort_n of_o soul_n depart_v whereof_o the_o first_o be_v in_o bliss_n the_o second_o in_o pain_n and_o endless_a misery_n and_o that_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n where_o they_o pray_v for_o those_o that_o sleep_n in_o a_o sleep_n of_o peace_n but_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o all_o that_o have_v not_o satisfy_v here_o for_o temporal_a punishment_n must_v be_v plonge_v in_o the_o unspeakable_a pain_n of_o purgatory_n and_o so_o after_o a_o time_n pass_v to_o heaven_n argument_n 20_o all_o catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o his_o father_n and_o that_o he_o have_v satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n full_o and_o perfect_o the_o 53._o the_o isay_n 53._o prophet_n say_v that_o we_o be_v heal_v by_o his_o stripe_n ipse_fw-la volneratus_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o propter_fw-la iniquitates_fw-la nostras_fw-la attritus_fw-la est_fw-la propter_fw-la scelera_fw-la nostra_fw-la disciplina_fw-la pacis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la super_fw-la eum_fw-la we_o may_v therefore_o well_o accounpt_v they_o no_o catholic_n that_o purgat_fw-la that_o bellar._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la purgat_fw-la teach_v that_o christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n of_o their_o own_o sin_n either_o here_o or_o in_o purgatory_n the_o which_o be_v not_o where_o deliver_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n argument_n 21_o true_a catholic_n never_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o do_v ever_o the_o godly_a
in_o offic_n beat_v mariae_fw-la to_o a_o wooden_a cross_n increase_v in_o the_o godly_a righteousness_n and_o pardon_v sinner_n and_o also_o crux_fw-la christi_fw-la protege_fw-la i_o crux_fw-la christi_fw-la defend_v i_o ab_fw-la omni_fw-la malo_fw-la and_o which_o before_o the_o print_a face_n which_o they_o call_v volto_n santo_n pray_v thus_o salue_fw-la sancta_fw-la facies_fw-la impresta_fw-mi panniculo_fw-la nos_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la macula_fw-la purga_fw-la vitiorum_fw-la atque_fw-la nos_fw-la consortio_fw-la iunge_fw-la beatorum_fw-la argument_n 62_o catholic_n believe_v that_o their_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n be_v accept_v through_o christ_n but_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v accept_v through_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o saint_n the_o priest_n in_o the_o canon_n beséech_v god_n to_o look_v favourable_o upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n supra_fw-la quae_fw-la say_v he_o propitio_fw-la ac_fw-la sereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respicere_fw-la digneris_fw-la and_o in_o the_o missal_n of_o sarum_n on_o batildis_n day_n they_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v their_o sacrifice_n viz._n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n through_o the_o merit_n of_o s._n batildis_n ut_fw-la haec_fw-la munera_fw-la tibi_fw-la domine_fw-la accepta_fw-la sint_fw-la say_v they_o sanctae_fw-la batildis_n obtineant_fw-la merita_fw-la quae_fw-la seipsam_fw-la tibi_fw-la hostiam_fw-la vivam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la &_o bene_fw-la placentem_fw-la exhibuit_fw-la argument_n 63_o catholic_n believe_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v only_o upon_o earth_n but_o the_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o hell_n and_o purgatory_n damascen_n and_o other_o author_n of_o romish_a legend_n tell_v we_o that_o gregory_n the_o first_o deliver_v traian_n soul_n out_o of_o hell_n and_o every_o petty_a pope_n think_v he_o be_v abuse_v if_o any_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o let_v out_o of_o purgatory_n as_o many_o as_o he_o please_v common_o all_o papist_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o place_n of_o rest_n give_v they_o and_o that_o their_o sin_n may_v be_v pardon_v they_o as_o if_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v after_o this_o life_n argument_n 64_o catholic_n neither_o worship_v saint_n depart_v nor_o their_o image_n nor_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n hierome_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o ripatius_n deni_v that_o any_o creature_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o adore_v 10._o adore_v lib._n 22._o decivit_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 10._o augustine_n show_v that_o christian_n do_v not_o worship_v martyr_n nor_o erect_v temple_n in_o honour_n of_o they_o and_o say_v that_o they_o give_v thanks_o and_o praise_n unto_o god_n only_o at_o their_o monument_n ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la mater_fw-la christianorum_fw-la verissima_fw-la say_v 30._o say_v de_fw-fr morib_n eccles_n lib._n 1._o c._n 30._o he_o solum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la deum_fw-la cvius_fw-la adeptio_fw-la vita_fw-la est_fw-la beatissima_fw-la purissimè_fw-la atque_fw-la castisimè_fw-la colendum_fw-la praedicat_fw-la nullam_fw-la nobis_fw-la adorandam_fw-la creaturam_fw-la inducens_fw-la cvi_fw-la seruire_fw-la iubeamur_fw-la whereby_o plain_o he_o exclude_v the_o worship_n of_o doulia_fw-la theodosij_n doulia_fw-la de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la theodosij_n ambrose_n declare_v that_o helen_n find_v the_o cross_n worship_v not_o the_o cross_n but_o christ_n but_o the_o papist_n worship_n not_o only_o the_o saint_n but_o dumb_a image_n they_o say_v mass_n in_o honour_n of_o s._n francis_n and_o s._n dominicke_n and_o diverse_a other_o saint_n they_o kneel_v to_o image_n and_o burn_v incense_n unto_o they_o final_o they_o give_v latriam_fw-la that_o be_v due_a by_o their_o own_o confession_n to_o god_n only_o to_o the_o cross_n to_o the_o crucifix_n and_o to_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n argument_n 65_o true_a catholic_n never_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n or_o the_o holy_a trinity_n nor_o do_v think_v it_o lawful_a to_o worship_v they_o with_o divine_a worship_v but_o the_o papist_n both_v make_v such_o image_n and_o allow_v such_o worship_n to_o be_v give_v to_o they_o argument_n 66_o true_a catholic_n never_o have_v any_o psalter_n in_o honour_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n nor_o use_v to_o say_v a_o hundred_o and_o 50._o auemariaes_n and_o after_o every_o fifty_o auemariaes_n one_o creed_n and_o after_o every_o ten_o ave-mary_n one_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la nay_o our_o saviour_n express_o forbid_v his_o desciple_n to_o use_v battology_n and_o odious_a repetition_n in_o their_o prayer_n but_o papist_n put_v great_a religion_n in_o our_o lady_n psalter_n and_o in_o their_o rosary_n and_o often_o repetition_n of_o the_o name_n of_o jesu_n and_o of_o their_o auemariaes_n argument_n 67_o true_a catholic_n never_o conjure_v salt_n nor_o holy_a water_n nor_o oil_n nor_o chrism_n nor_o superstitious_o sanctify_a candle_n cross_n and_o image_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o papist_n use_v to_o do_v neither_o do_v they_o grease_v stone_n alter_v or_o describe_v the_o greek_a alphabet_n on_o the_o pavement_n of_o church_n to_o be_v consecrate_v or_o abuse_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v in_o that_o act_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o formulary_a common_o use_v in_o such_o case_n that_o ancient_a catholic_n never_o use_v any_o such_o ceremony_n it_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o also_o in_o old_a ritual_a book_n for_o in_o they_o such_o form_n of_o consecration_n exorcization_n and_o such_o abuse_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v argument_n 68_o true_a 4._o true_a john_n 4._o catholic_n worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o the_o papist_n place_v most_o of_o god_n worship_n in_o external_a ceremony_n and_o use_v in_o their_o worship_n a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v so_o that_o their_o prayer_n can_v proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n nor_o be_v true_a nor_o catholic_a argument_n 69_o true_a catholic_n never_o worship_v angel_n 2._o angel_n coloss_n 2._o the_o apostle_n paul_n do_v express_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o as_o chrysostome_n theodoret_n oecumenius_n write_v upon_o the_o 2._o and_o 3._o chap._n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n do_v testify_v the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n do_v also_o prohibit_v the_o worship_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n 39_o saint_n de_fw-fr hare_n c._n 39_o augustine_n number_v the_o worshipper_n of_o angel_n among_o heretic_n neither_o may_v we_o think_v that_o they_o be_v therefore_o condemn_v because_o they_o atrtibute_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n to_o angel_n but_o because_o they_o worship_v angel_n and_o as_o chrysostome_n homil_n 7._o in_o coloss_n 2._o affirm_v think_v we_o be_v to_o come_v to_o god_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o angel_n and_o yet_o papist_n sacrum_fw-la papist_n horae_n ad_fw-la usum_fw-la sacrum_fw-la pray_v to_o angel_n that_o they_o will_v protect_v they_o and_o drive_v devil_n from_o they_o and_o open_v their_o sight_n they_o say_v also_o mass_n in_o their_o honour_n set_v up_o light_n to_o they_o make_v confession_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o they_o and_o all_o this_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a church_n argument_n 70_o our_o 15._o our_o matth._n 15._o saviour_n christ_n teach_v that_o those_o worship_n god_n in_o vain_a which_o worship_v he_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o commandment_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o all_o true_a catholic_n have_v have_v principal_a respect_n herein_o to_o the_o commandment_n and_o law_n of_o god_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v whole_o depend_v upon_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n and_o vain_a fancy_n of_o man_n their_o missal_n breviaries_n office_n and_o whole_a service_n proceed_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n argument_n 71_o the_o 32._o the_o psal_n 32._o prophet_n declare_v that_o they_o be_v bless_v who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v and_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o be_v instify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o all_o catholic_n that_o christ_n have_v reconcile_v we_o to_o his_o father_n and_o wash_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o pay_v a_o ransom_n for_o they_o on_o the_o cross_n but_o this_o comfort_n papist_n do_v take_v from_o we_o that_o teach_v and_o hold_v that_o after_o our_o sin_n forgive_v we_o be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o temporal_a pain_n due_a for_o our_o sin_n either_o here_o or_o in_o purgatory_n and_o that_o such_o be_v there_o to_o sustain_v great_a torment_n in_o which_o pain_n and_o place_n none_o but_o mad_a man_n can_v place_v felicity_n argument_n 72_o catholic_n believe_v that_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n the_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v apply_v they_o by_o his_o bull_n both_o in_o purgatory_n and_o in_o this_o life_n according_a to_o his_o law_n argument_n 73_o catholic_n believe_v that_o no_o man_n can_v satisfy_v for_o his_o
sciret_fw-la ab_fw-la homine_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la fieri_fw-la so_o likewise_o the_o papist_n say_v if_o we_o have_v not_o fréewill_n that_o then_o god_n will_v not_o command_v we_o to_o do_v thing_n but_o he_o confute_v both_o their_o reason_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v quis_fw-la hoc_fw-la nesciat_fw-la say_v he_o sed_fw-la ideo_fw-la iubet_fw-la aliqua_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la ut_fw-la noverimus_fw-la quid_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la petere_fw-la debeamus_fw-la he_o say_v not_o that_o we_o have_v free_a will_n to_o do_v good_a work_n because_o god_n command_v we_o to_o do_v they_o but_o rather_o show_v that_o god_n command_v we_o to_o do_v thing_n which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o do_v that_o we_o may_v learn_v what_o to_o crave_v and_o beg_v at_o god_n hand_n we_o may_v therefore_o well_o conclude_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v far_o decline_v towards_o pelagianisme_n and_o that_o long_a before_o we_o do_v pelag._n do_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr great_a advers_a pelag._n thomas_n brandwardine_n perceive_v &_o declare_v and_o therefore_o doubt_v not_o to_o call_v the_o popish_a schoolman_n pelagian_n totus_fw-la mundus_fw-la say_v he_o post_fw-la pelagium_fw-la in_o errorem_fw-la abiit_fw-la exurge_v deus_fw-la &_o iudica_fw-la causam_fw-la tuam_fw-la this_o man_n write_v about_o 300._o year_n ago_o but_o now_o our_o adversary_n be_v grow_v worse_a and_o worse_a argument_n 34_o the_o donatist_n as_o saint_n 69._o saint_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 69._o augustine_n write_v beléeve_v that_o the_o church_n be_v only_o contain_v in_o africa_n and_o consist_v in_o the_o obedience_n or_o part_n of_o donatus_n quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v he_o in_o africa_n &_o donati_n parte_fw-la remanserit_fw-la they_o do_v also_o rebaptize_v catholic_a christian_n if_o this_o than_o be_v heresy_n the_o papist_n may_v not_o escape_v scot_n free_a that_o believe_v the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n only_o and_o take_v none_o for_o christian_n but_o such_o 12._o such_o geronym●_n campos_n catetechism_n &_o brist_n motiut_a 12._o as_o take_v the_o pope_n part_n and_o live_v under_o his_o obedience_n they_o do_v also_o presume_v sometime_o to_o rebaptize_v such_o as_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o our_o church_n argument_n 35_o the_o circumcellion_n shought_v it_o a_o matter_n meritorious_a to_o kill_v those_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o sect_n immania_fw-la facinora_fw-la perpetrando_fw-la as_o s._n 69._o s._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 69._o augustine_n say_v nay_o that_o holy_a man_n himself_o do_v hardly_o escape_v their_o ambuscado_n lay_v for_o he_o like_o to_o they_o also_o do_v papist_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o meritorious_a to_o kill_v prince_n excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n both_o pope_n pius_n the_o five_o and_o sixtus_n the_o five_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n command_v her_o majesty_n subject_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o she_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la that_o shameless_a friar_n do_v fulminante_fw-la do_v la_fw-fr fulminante_fw-la high_o commend_v james_n clement_n the_o dominican_n friar_n that_o murder_v his_o liege_n prince_n henry_n the_o three_o king_n of_o france_n john_n ghineard_n a_o jebusite_n do_v maintain_v this_o doctrine_n of_o murder_a prince_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o arrest_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o paris_n condemn_v &_o execute_v by_o these_o desperate_a assassin_n and_o hire_a murderer_n the_o papist_n kill_v the_o prince_n of_o orange_n and_o james_n the_o regent_n of_o scotland_n and_o poison_v diverse_a other_o alphonsus_n diazius_fw-la do_v most_o wicked_o murder_v his_o own_o brother_n and_o yet_o be_v protect_v by_o the_o pope_n final_o by_o diverse_a mean_n they_o have_v seek_v to_o murder_v the_o queen_n majesty_n king_n henry_n the_o 4._o of_o france_n grave_a maurice_n and_o all_o that_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n far_o pass_v not_o only_o the_o heretical_a circumcellion_n but_o also_o the_o turkish_a assassin_n argument_n 36_o the_o audaean_o or_o anthropomorphite_n do_v imagine_v god_n to_o have_v a_o humane_a shape_n &_o part_n like_o a_o mortal_a man_n cogitation_n carnali_fw-la say_v 50._o say_v de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 50._o augustine_n deum_fw-la fingebant_fw-la in_o similitu_fw-la dinem_fw-la hominis_fw-la corruptibilis_fw-la the_o papist_n likewise_o can_v imagine_v but_o that_o god_n be_v like_a man_n when_o they_o express_v god_n the_o father_n in_o likeness_n of_o a_o old_a man_n or_o at_o the_o least_o imagine_v such_o image_n to_o be_v like_o god_n they_o do_v also_o make_v the_o image_n of_o the_o incomprehensible_a trinity_n let_v the_o people_n be_v teach_v say_v the_o man_n of_o 25._o of_o s●ss_n 25._o trent_n that_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o therefore_o figure_v as_o if_o it_o can_v be_v see_v with_o corporeal_a eye_n or_o express_v wirh_n colour_n or_o figure_n it_o appear_v therefore_o they_o mean_v it_o shall_v be_v represent_v though_o it_o can_v not_o be_v well_o express_v by_o figure_n argument_n 37_o origen_n beléeve_v that_o sin_n may_v be_v purge_v and_o do_v away_o after_o this_o life_n and_o therefore_o 43._o therefore_o augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 43._o imagine_v that_o even_o the_o damn_a after_o some_o long_a time_n may_v be_v save_v he_o delight_v also_o to_o draw_v scripture_n to_o serve_v allegorical_a sense_n if_o then_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o say_v that_o great_a sin_n be_v to_o be_v remit_v after_o this_o life_n why_o be_v it_o not_o heresy_n to_o hold_v that_o small_a sin_n may_v be_v then_o remit_v see_v we_o have_v but_o one_o mean_n to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n again_o why_o shall_v allegorical_a interpretation_n be_v more_o allowable_a in_o papist_n then_o in_o origen_n final_o why_o shall_v not_o other_o damn_a soul_n be_v as_o well_o save_v as_o traian_n soul_n and_o the_o soul_n of_o falconilla_n a_o idolatress_n at_o the_o intercession_n of_o gregory_n as_o damascen_n and_o the_o papist_n believe_v argument_n 38_o eunomius_n teach_v that_o so_o a_o man_n be_v of_o his_o religion_n it_o skill_a not_o great_o what_o sin_n he_o commit_v asseverabat_fw-la say_v 54._o say_v de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la ●_o 54._o augustine_n quod_fw-la nihil_fw-la cviquam_fw-la obesset_fw-la quorumlibet_fw-la perpetratio_fw-la ac_fw-la perseverantia_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la si_fw-la huius_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la docebatur_fw-la fidei_fw-la particeps_fw-la esset_fw-la unto_o which_o heresy_n the_o papist_n come_v very_o never_o for_o the_o pope_n to_o all_o his_o follower_n promise_v heaven_n if_o they_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v and_o will_v come_v to_o confession_n his_o canonist_n teach_v that_o the_o pope_n albeit_o he_o draw_v innumerable_a soul_n to_o hell_n and_o continue_v in_o all_o wickedness_n yet_o he_o be_v christ_n true_a vicar_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o church_n lib._n the_o eccles_n milit_fw-la c._n 2._o bellarmine_n require_v no_o inward_a virtue_n in_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o define_v so_o they_o profess_v outward_o and_o communicate_v with_o the_o pope_n let_v the_o world_n then_o judge_v what_o church_n the_o papist_n build_v when_o they_o admit_v piers_n lacie_n tirone_n the_o white_a knight_n and_o such_o wicked_a rebel_n to_o be_v true_a part_n and_o member_n of_o their_o society_n argument_n 39_o the_o 4._o the_o 1._o tim._n 4._o apostle_n condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n that_o forbid_v man_n to_o marry_v and_o to_o abstain_v from_o certain_a meat_n whereupon_o say_v 4._o say_v in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o theodoret_n rectè_fw-la posuit_fw-la prohibentium_fw-la contrahere_fw-la matrimonium_fw-la neque_fw-la eum_fw-la caelibatum_fw-la aut_fw-la continentiam_fw-la vituperat_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la accusat_fw-la qui_fw-la lege_fw-la lata_fw-la ea_fw-la sequi_fw-la compellunt_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n by_o sharp_a law_n forbid_v priest_n and_o monk_n to_o marry_v and_o to_o eat_v certain_a meat_n be_v they_o not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o these_o false_a teacher_n argument_n 40_o the_o heretic_n call_v anomi_n be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n for_o that_o they_o either_o contemn_v or_o corrupt_v the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v it_o not_o then_o some_o blemish_n to_o papist_n that_o they_o make_v the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o be_v unperfect_a and_o trid._n and_o sess_n 4._o council_n trid._n make_v their_o own_o tradition_n equal_a to_o god_n law_n and_o be_v it_o not_o heresy_n to_o make_v a_o new_a lawgiver_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v c._n translato_fw-la de_fw-fr constitutionibus_fw-la and_o to_o cut_v off_o the_o second_o commandment_n concern_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n final_o do_v they_o imagine_v that_o it_o be_v no_o error_n to_o 5._o to_o council_n trid._n sess_v 5._o say_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v no_o sin_n which_o be_v direct_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n rom._n 7._o and_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n argument_n 41_o ireneus_fw-la and_o tertullian_n do_v range_v they_o among_o heretic_n which_o fly_v from_o scripture_n and_o when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o they_o fall_v to_o accuse_v they_o affirm_v that_o the_o
obedience_n then_o to_o be_v make_v priest_n by_o the_o pope_n agent_n be_v argument_n sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o traitor_n likewise_o it_o be_v no_o treason_n simple_o to_o be_v addict_v to_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n no_o more_o than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v sarracen_n or_o turk_n yet_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o receive_v absolution_n from_o his_o agent_n be_v treason_n he_o be_v a_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o state_n and_o use_v this_o reconciliation_n and_o colour_n of_o religion_n for_o a_o mean_n to_o overthrow_v her_o majesty_n and_o this_o kingdom_n and_o to_o réestablish_v yet_o once_o again_o his_o tyranny_n in_o england_n final_o to_o obey_v good_a bishop_n can_v be_v evil_o interpret_v but_o to_o submit_v a_o man_n self_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o pretend_v to_o have_v right_a to_o depose_v prince_n and_o to_o translate_v kingdom_n from_o one_o to_o another_o at_o pleasure_n a_o matter_n repugnant_a to_o scripture_n to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n and_o as_o sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la testify_v speak_v of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o his_o time_n a_o notarious_a and_o plain_a condemn_a heresy_n can_v but_o prejudice_n the_o right_a of_o a_o prince_n in_o enmity_n with_o the_o pope_n &_o prove_v flat_a treason_n three_o the_o true_a martyr_n of_o christ_n suffer_v for_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n wronful_o and_o therefore_o deserve_v the_o honour_n and_o title_n of_o martyr_n and_o very_o high_a commendation_n that_o be_v thankeswoorthy_a say_v saint_n 2._o saint_n 1._o pet._n 2._o peter_n if_o a_o man_n for_o conscience_n towards_o god_n endure_v grief_n suffer_v wrongful_o such_o be_v the_o martyr_n of_o time_n past_a who_o suffer_v death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n nor_o sacrifice_n to_o idol_n but_o the_o pope_n martyr_n suffer_v for_o practise_v with_o foreign_a enemy_n and_o die_v for_o the_o pope_n pleasure_n and_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o set_v up_o idolatry_n for_o conscience_n they_o can_v say_v they_o suffer_v unless_o the_o make_v treason_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n a_o matter_n of_o conscience_n and_o rule_v their_o conscience_n by_o the_o pope_n will_n and_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o idolatry_n or_o blasphemy_n neither_o can_v they_o say_v they_o be_v punish_v wrongful_o be_v punish_v for_o their_o treason_n rebellion_n and_o pack_n against_o the_o state_n with_o foreign_a enemy_n whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v entitle_v and_o call_v these_o fellow_n martyr_n he_o shall_v great_o wrong_v religion_n and_o the_o state_n of_o martyr_n and_o much_o resemble_v the_o donatist_n and_o other_o old_a heretic_n saint_n 68_o saint_n epist_n 68_o augustine_n say_v of_o the_o donatist_n vivebant_fw-la ut_fw-la latrones_fw-la honorabantur_fw-la ut_fw-la martyr_n alexander_n also_o a_o heretic_n of_o who_o 17._o who_o lib._n 5._o eccles_n just_a c._n 17._o eusebius_n make_v mention_v live_v as_o a_o thief_n and_o die_v for_o his_o desert_n and_o yet_o by_o those_o of_o his_o sect_n be_v honour_v as_o a_o martyr_n such_o martyr_n also_o be_v those_o of_o the_o popish_a sect_n for_o whatsoever_o reckon_v their_o consort_n make_v of_o they_o they_o be_v punish_v just_o for_o their_o offence_n and_o die_v for_o treason_n rebellion_n practise_v and_o pack_v with_o foreign_a enemy_n four_o true_a martyr_n be_v charitable_a and_o die_v in_o charity_n for_o without_o charity_n furious_a and_o jesuitical_a zeal_n to_o promote_v the_o pope_n cause_n avail_v nothing_o if_o i_o give_v my_o body_n to_o be_v burn_v say_v the_o 13._o the_o 1._o cor._n 13._o apostle_n and_o have_v not_o love_n it_o profit_v i_o nothing_o now_o what_o charity_n think_v you_o have_v they_o that_o be_v employ_v by_o public_a enemy_n to_o the_o hurt_n and_o destruction_n of_o their_o liege_n lady_n and_o most_o dear_a country_n charity_n say_v the_o ibid._n the_o ibid._n apostle_n be_v patient_a gentle_a humble_a but_o these_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n seek_v to_o return_v into_o their_o country_n and_o like_o fierce_a lion_n endeavour_n by_o conquest_n to_o subdue_v man_n to_o their_o opinion_n anno_o 1588._o their_o common_a talk_n be_v of_o share_v of_o land_n and_o live_n in_o wisbich_n also_o all_o the_o stir_n among_o the_o papist_n grow_v about_o superiority_n the_o jesuit_n seek_v to_o rule_v the_o rest_n refuse_v to_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o parson_n they_o say_v have_v a_o old_a prophecy_n how_o england_n must_v be_v rule_v by_o certain_a man_n in_o long_a black_a gown_n and_o square_a cap_n that_o be_v by_o jesuite_n and_o long_o he_o have_v be_v dream_v of_o a_o cardinal_n hat_n yet_o none_o fall_v to_o his_o share_n in_o all_o the_o english_a college_n and_o seminary_n the_o jesuit_n by_o great_a stir_n have_v seek_v the_o government_n consort_n government_n a_o discovery_n of_o campian_n and_o his_o consort_n cottam_n a_o english_a jesuite_n be_v condemn_v to_o die_v pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v send_v down_o fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o consume_v all_o the_o people_n that_o stand_v round_o about_o he_o to_o gaze_v on_o he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o gentleness_n and_o charity_n of_o jesuitical_a martyr_n when_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la tell_v the_o jesuite_n that_o he_o wonder_v that_o none_o of_o their_o order_n be_v canonize_v for_o saint_n some_o of_o they_o answer_v that_o they_o seek_v honour_n in_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o not_o in_o the_o church_n militant_a such_o triumphant_a martyr_n be_v these_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o jesuit_n calendar_n five_o true_a martyr_n be_v man_n of_o a_o peaceable_a disposition_n and_o no_o way_n desirous_a of_o tumult_n and_o trouble_n parmen_fw-la trouble_n lib._n 3._o contr_n parmen_fw-la si_fw-la supra_fw-la memoratos_fw-la say_v optatus_n videri_fw-la martyr_n vultis_fw-la probate_a illos_fw-la amass_n pacem_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la prima_fw-la sunt_fw-la fundamenta_fw-la martyrij_fw-la aut_fw-la dilexisse_fw-la deo_fw-la placitam_fw-la unitatem_fw-la aut_fw-la habuisse_fw-la cum_fw-la fratribus_fw-la unitatem_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la nullum_fw-la vel_fw-la nomine_fw-la potest_fw-la vel_fw-la re_fw-la esse_fw-la martyrium_fw-la his_o word_n in_o effect_n amount_v to_o this_o that_o none_o can_v be_v martyr_n unless_o they_o they_o be_v studious_a of_o peace_n and_o unity_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n neither_o agree_v with_o we_o nor_o with_o themselves_o and_o be_v give_v much_o to_o contention_n and_o continual_o have_v stir_v up_o war_n and_o hurliburly_n in_o diverse_a country_n and_o have_v like_a firebrand_n set_v most_o part_n of_o christendom_n on_o a_o flame_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o action_n in_o england_n scotland_n france_n germany_n flanders_n suethland_n and_o other_o place_n why_o shall_v such_o man_n die_v rather_o be_v account_v martyr_n than_o the_o contentious_a donatist_n six_o the_o true_a martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n die_v in_o time_n pass_v for_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n but_o the_o popish_a mastiff_n die_v for_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n &_o for_o defence_n of_o his_o most_o unjust_a and_o tyrannical_a usurpation_n according_a to_o such_o doctrine_n as_o they_o have_v receive_v out_o of_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la &_o their_o master_n dictate_v who_o then_o do_v not_o marvel_n that_o any_o shall_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o call_v such_o obstinate_a fellow_n that_o die_v out_o of_o the_o church_n &_o for_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v so_o much_o as_o once_o call_v in_o question_n martyr_n cum_fw-la deo_fw-la manere_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la say_v cyprian_n qui_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la unanime_n noluerunt_fw-la ardeant_fw-la licet_fw-la flammis_fw-la &_o ignibus_fw-la traditi_fw-la &_o obiecti_fw-la bestiis_fw-la animas_fw-la svas_fw-la ponant_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la illa_fw-la fidei_fw-la corona_fw-la sed_fw-la poena_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la occidi_fw-la talis_fw-la potest_fw-la coronari_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la if_o then_o these_o good_a fellow_n have_v forsake_v the_o church_n and_o link_v themselves_o with_o enemy_n and_o traitor_n die_v they_o may_v for_o their_o treason_n but_o crown_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o martyr_n neither_o be_v it_o death_n but_o the_o cause_n that_o make_v christian_n die_v to_o be_v esteem_v martyr_n sevent_o no_o true_a martyr_n ever_o seem_v more_o desirous_a of_o the_o applause_n and_o praise_n of_o man_n then_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o good_a of_o christ_n people_n fi_fw-la ita_fw-la martyrium_fw-la fecerimus_fw-la say_v 5._o say_v in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n lib._n 3._o c._n 5._o hierome_n ut_fw-la nostras_fw-la velimus_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la reliquias_fw-la venerari_fw-la si_fw-la opinionem_fw-la vulgi_fw-la sectantes_fw-la intrepidi_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la fuderimus_fw-la &_o substantiam_fw-la nostram_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mendicitatem_fw-la propriam_fw-la dederimus_fw-la huic_fw-la operi_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la praemium_fw-la quàm_fw-la paena_fw-la debetur_fw-la &_o perfidiae_fw-la magis_fw
tormenta_fw-mi sunt_fw-la quàm_fw-la corona_fw-la victoriae_fw-la his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o can_v be_v martyr_n that_o seek_v the_o applause_n of_o the_o multitude_n &_o for_o vainglory_n die_v obstinate_a in_o their_o opinion_n if_o then_o the_o pope_n agent_n in_o england_n seek_v nothing_o more_o than_o their_o own_o glory_n &_o praise_n and_o the_o applause_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n and_o the_o simple_a people_n adhere_v unto_o they_o it_o be_v but_o a_o simple_a imagination_n to_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v martyr_n christian_n martyr_n certes_o seek_v not_o their_o own_o glory_n nor_o the_o applause_n of_o man_n nor_o do_v they_o solicit_v the_o invasion_n of_o their_o country_n and_o domestical_a tumult_n that_o they_o may_v reign_v like_o young_a lord_n eight_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fashion_n of_o martyr_n in_o ancient_a time_n to_o renounce_v their_o king_n and_o sovereign_a prince_n &_o to_o refuse_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o authority_n for_o well_o they_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v they_o obedience_n &_o not_o rebellion_n nor_o contumacious_a resist_n against_o the_o princess_n power_n omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la say_v 13._o say_v rom._n 13._o he_o potestatibus_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la subdita_fw-la sit_fw-la neither_o do_v the_o holy_a martyr_n of_o christ_n church_n set_v out_o most_o slanderous_a libel_n against_o man_n in_o authority_n or_o allow_v any_o such_o course_n final_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o ever_o any_o godly_a martyr_n do_v bear_v arm_n against_o lawful_a prince_n or_o go_v about_o to_o depose_v they_o or_o murder_v they_o upon_o bishop_n or_o other_o man_n commandment_n whatsoever_o hieremy_n he_o have_v more_o authority_n than_o have_v the_o pope_n constitui_fw-la te_fw-la hodie_fw-la super_fw-la gentes_fw-la say_v 1_o say_v hierem._n 1_o god_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o he_o have_v power_n to_o pull_v up_o &_o to_o destroy_v yet_o we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o command_v any_o prince_n to_o be_v depose_v or_o murder_v but_o campian_n and_o his_o consort_n who_o the_o papist_n notwithstanding_o celebrate_v &_o repute_v martyr_n do_v disclaim_v her_o majesty_n authority_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n declaration_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o answer_n yet_o to_o be_v see_v all_o priest_n also_o that_o come_v from_o rome_n in_o their_o case_n of_o conscience_n which_o they_o will_v not_o deny_v be_v teach_v to_o deny_v her_o majesty_n to_o be_v their_o lawful_a queen_n robert_n parson_n campian_n fellow_n have_v since_o his_o execution_n prove_v a_o notorious_a libeller_n both_o the_o pretend_a martyr_n themselves_n have_v set_v out_o slanderous_a libel_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o the_o state_n and_o have_v well_o like_v of_o the_o slanderous_a and_o lie_a writing_n of_o sander_n harpsfield_n ribadineira_n rishton_n parson_n bristol_n creswell_n &_o other_o when_o the_o army_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o spaniard_n be_v ready_a to_o come_v for_o england_n anno_fw-la 1588._o than_o be_v parson_n they_o say_v very_o busy_a in_o print_v pope_n sixtus_n his_o scandalous_a declaration_n against_o her_o majesty_n and_o allens_n rail_v and_o scurrilous_a letter_n to_o the_o nobility_n and_o people_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n a_o parson_n a_o in_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o libel_n set_v out_o by_o parson_n friend_n of_o his_o also_o do_v charge_v he_o that_o his_o finger_n be_v both_o in_o the_o make_n and_o disperse_v that_o infamous_a libel_n and_o yet_o the_o pretend_a popish_a martyr_n will_v neither_o mislike_v the_o author_n nor_o these_o wicked_a libel_n nor_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o may_v work_v disgrace_n either_o to_o her_o majesty_n or_o the_o state_n final_o the_o earl_n of_o northumberland_n and_o the_o two_o nortons_n and_o diverse_a priest_n who_o bristol_n in_o his_o motive_n and_o sander_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr visibili_fw-la monarchia_fw-la and_o diverse_a other_o do_v celebrate_v for_o martyr_n be_v in_o the_o crown_n office_n and_o public_a record_n register_v for_o man_n of_o a_o far_o diverse_a quality_n among_o these_o certes_o the_o earl_n of_o northumberland_n and_o the_o nortons_n be_v principal_a actor_n in_o the_o rebellion_n anno_fw-la 1569._o and_o diverse_a of_o the_o rest_n be_v spot_v with_o other_o treason_n but_o percase_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n not_o unusual_a for_o the_o pope_n to_o put_v those_o in_o the_o calendar_n of_o martyr_n who_o public_a executioner_n register_v in_o their_o book_n for_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n in_o which_o rank_n it_o may_v be_v that_o james_n clement_n that_o murder_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o of_o france_n and_o ghineard_n the_o jesuite_n that_o allow_v that_o murder_n and_o be_v therefore_o execute_v and_o chastell_n that_o assault_v henry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n now_o reign_v shall_v sometime_o or_o other_o be_v enter_v and_o be_v repute_v as_o good_a saint_n as_o the_o best_a no_o martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n do_v ever_o suppose_v it_o a_o thing_n lawful_a to_o break_v their_o other_o of_o allegeame_n to_o their_o prince_n upon_o any_o excommunication_n or_o other_o warrant_n of_o pope_n or_o bishop_n 7._o bishop_n in_o chronic._n &_o auentin_n annal_n 7._o sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la say_v it_o be_v a_o pernicious_a heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v discharge_v subject_n from_o the_o bond_n of_o a_o oath_n and_o from_o their_o allegiance_n but_o the_o pope_n martyr_n or_o rather_o unnatural_a and_o churlish_a mastiff_n do_v not_o only_o take_v themselves_o to_o be_v discharge_v from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o join_v with_o foreign_a enemy_n but_o also_o persuade_v as_o many_o as_o they_o can_v to_o take_v arm_n against_o their_o prince_n and_o country_n in_o ancient_a record_n of_o ecclesiastical_a story_n we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o any_o martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n do_v ever_o deny_v his_o name_n quality_n kindred_n and_o prince_n all_o together_o nor_o that_o they_o use_v equivocation_n and_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n nor_o final_o that_o they_o go_v apparel_v like_o spadassin_n and_o ruffian_n but_o these_o pretend_a popish_a martyr_n do_v not_o only_o all_o this_o but_o also_o be_v resolve_v by_o allen_n and_o parson_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o do_v the_o 1._o the_o resolut_a quorundam_fw-la casuum_fw-la nationis_fw-la anglicanae_n c._n 1._o case_n be_v put_v utrum_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la possit_fw-la habitum_fw-la mutare_fw-la comam_fw-la nutrire_fw-la nomen_fw-la &_o patriam_fw-la &_o parent_n negare_fw-la they_o answer_v thus_o potest_fw-la nec_fw-la videtur_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la re_fw-la dubium_fw-la potest_fw-la enim_fw-la quis_fw-la veritatem_fw-la tacere_fw-la vel_fw-la dissimulare_fw-la the_o same_o good_a fellow_n determine_v also_o quod_fw-la dissimulatio_fw-la est_fw-la licita_fw-la that_o be_v that_o dissimulation_n be_v lawful_a and_o afterward_o they_o say_v it_o be_v pious_a to_o use_v dissimulation_n for_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o lay_v ambuscado_n for_o enemy_n so_o it_o appear_v they_o take_v all_o their_o countryman_n that_o favour_v the_o state_n for_o enemy_n and_o will_v take_v they_o in_o ambuscado_n if_o they_o can_v and_o this_o if_o we_o look_v not_o to_o it_o they_o have_v full_o purpose_v and_o resolve_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o resolve_a case_n concern_v the_o queen_n they_o say_v she_o be_v not_o lawful_a the_o more_o they_o to_o blame_v that_o hold_v they_o for_o lawful_a subject_n regina_fw-la haeretica_fw-la say_v ibidem_fw-la say_v ibidem_fw-la they_o non_fw-la est_fw-la legitimè_fw-la regina_fw-la and_o again_o non_fw-la gerit_fw-la se_fw-la ut_fw-la reginam_fw-la sed_fw-la exercet_fw-la tyrannidem_fw-la final_o the_o disciple_n of_o these_o traitor_n be_v teach_v to_o renounce_v their_o country_n and_o to_o give_v no_o respect_n to_o their_o parent_n if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n it_o be_v not_o the_o fashion_n of_o christian_a martyr_n in_o time_n past_a to_o use_v machiavelian_a trick_n nor_o to_o equivocate_v in_o place_n of_o judgement_n nor_o to_o forswear_v themselves_o be_v examine_v and_o interrogated_a by_o their_o superior_n but_o the_o schoolmaster_n of_o our_o popish_a priest_n and_o the_o pope_n calf_n and_o design_v popish_a mastiff_n do_v inform_v they_o that_o they_o may_v do_v both_o without_o any_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n sciant_fw-la say_v 3._o say_v ibidem_fw-la c._n 3_o case_z 3._o they_o se_fw-la uti_fw-la posse_fw-la aequivocationibus_fw-la &_o iurare_fw-la sine_fw-la peccato_fw-la now_o by_o equivocation_n they_o mean_v promise_n and_o oath_n make_v not_o according_a to_o common_a and_o literal_a meaning_n nor_o according_a to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o judge_n but_o according_a to_o a_o certain_a hide_a meaning_n of_o the_o party_n and_o by_o swear_v they_o understand_v false_a forswear_n according_a to_o our_o common_a understanding_n they_o ibidem_fw-la they_o ibidem_fw-la teach_v also_o that_o a_o priest_n be_v no_o more_o to_o regard_v a_o oath_n to_o the_o queen_n officer_n then_o if_o he_o shall_v swear_v to_o pirate_n
and_o robber_n be_v not_o these_o gallant_a fellow_n then_o trow_v you_o that_o suppose_v the_o queen_n justice_n to_o be_v like_o pirate_n and_o robber_n and_o that_o pirate_n and_o robber_n may_v as_o well_o spoil_v man_n by_o the_o high_a way_n as_o they_o deal_v with_o priest_n according_a to_o her_o majesty_n law_n final_o no_o heretic_n nor_o miscreant_n can_v just_o be_v repute_v martyr_n albeit_o they_o die_v for_o their_o false_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n the_o donatist_n die_v desperate_o &_o so_o likewise_o do_v the_o heretic_n call_v euphemitae_n which_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o their_o suppose_a martyr_n will_v needs_o be_v call_v 80._o call_v epiphan_n haeres_fw-la 80._o martyriani_fw-la yet_o do_v the_o church_n of_o god_n no_o otherwise_o account_n of_o they_o then_o as_o of_o lewd_a heretic_n and_o not_o as_o of_o martyr_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n epiphanius_n augustine_n and_o other_o father_n we_o read_v also_o in_o history_n that_o turk_n tartar_n &_o moor_n oftentimes_o die_v most_o resolute_o or_o rather_o desperate_o for_o the_o blasphemous_a opinion_n of_o mahomet_n &_o that_o the_o paris_n the_o matth._n paris_n assassin_n that_o be_v a_o sect_n of_o desperate_a cutthroat_n like_v to_o the_o jebusit_n that_o desperate_o will_v adventure_v to_o dispatch_v whosoever_o their_o general_n command_v they_o to_o murder_v suffer_v death_n most_o willing_o and_o constant_o and_o this_o they_o account_v a_o special_a point_n of_o their_o bloody_a religion_n yet_o it_o be_v mere_a madness_n to_o repute_v such_o fellow_n martyr_n why_o then_o shall_v the_o papist_n that_o have_v break_v their_o neck_n and_o die_v for_o the_o pope_n cause_n &_o who_o we_o have_v clear_o prove_v to_o be_v heretic_n be_v account_v martyr_n nay_o why_o shall_v rebel_n traitor_n and_o assassin_n such_o as_o parrye_v who_o by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o comoes_n letter_n &_o the_o pope_n promise_n be_v enduce_v to_o lay_v violent_a hand_n on_o her_o majesty_n &_o such_o like_a wicked_a man_n be_v name_v martyr_n if_o because_o they_o be_v put_v in_o the_o pope_n calendar_n it_o may_v be_v easy_o reply_v that_o as_o at_o rome_n they_o be_v put_v in_o the_o pope_n calendar_n so_o at_o newgate_n &_o such_o place_n they_o be_v put_v in_o the_o hangman_n calendar_n further_o it_o be_v christ_n truth_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n faction_n that_o make_v martyr_n those_o therefore_o that_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n quarrel_n be_v traitor_n and_o not_o martyr_n and_o that_o will_v be_v the_o case_n also_o of_o all_o their_o consort_n if_o they_o pass_v that_o way_n which_o i_o will_v have_v not_o only_o all_o jesuit_n and_o massepriest_n to_o consider_v but_o also_o all_o those_o that_o like_o their_o humour_n and_o opinion_n neither_o be_v it_o material_a that_o grace_n have_v be_v offer_v to_o some_o that_o have_v be_v execute_v for_o treason_n if_o they_o will_v have_v renounce_v the_o pope_n &_o his_o treacherous_a doctrine_n and_o faction_n for_o that_o show_v not_o that_o the_o party_n to_o who_o this_o grace_n be_v offer_v be_v no_o traitor_n but_o rather_o her_o majesty_n great_a clemency_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o pardon_v all_o of_o who_o any_o hope_n may_v be_v conceive_v that_o they_o will_v become_v good_a subject_n so_o likewise_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v offer_v pardon_n to_o a_o assassin_n it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o murder_v man_n upon_o a_o lewd_a conceit_n of_o wrong_a religion_n die_v as_o martyr_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n i_o trust_v all_o true_a christian_n will_v avoid_v they_o if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o catholic_a i_o hope_v true_a catholic_n will_v no_o long_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v abuse_v by_o they_o if_o they_o be_v heretic_n they_o will_v i_o trust_v for_o very_a shame_n forbear_v to_o impute_v heresy_n to_o true_a christian_n if_o massepriest_n be_v idolater_n i_o hope_v religious_a christian_n will_v take_v order_n with_o they_o as_o godly_a king_n do_v with_o baal_n priest_n final_o if_o massepriest_n and_o the_o pope_n agent_n have_v so_o far_o engage_v themselves_o in_o treason_n i_o hope_v all_o true_a subject_n will_v learn_v to_o detest_v popery_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n that_o it_o be_v a_o false_a religion_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v a_o pack_n of_o lewd_a opinion_n bear_v out_o with_o all_o fraud_n vileny_n and_o treason_n which_o because_o it_o flow_v from_o the_o forge_n of_o antichristes_n authority_n and_o invention_n let_v we_o beseech_v god_n to_o reveal_v daily_o more_o and_o more_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n that_o such_o as_o now_o be_v abuse_v by_o he_o may_v forsake_v he_o and_o serve_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n according_a to_o his_o holy_a word_n and_o thus_o much_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o declaration_n and_o justification_n of_o my_o challenge_n it_o rest_v now_o that_o i_o answer_v my_o adversary_n exception_n and_o cavil_n a_o answer_n first_o unto_o such_o exception_n as_o by_o a_o certain_a nameless_a and_o worthless_a fellow_n be_v take_v to_o the_o challenge_n precedent_n and_o next_o unto_o the_o same_o party_n most_o idle_a observation_n thereto_o also_o be_v add_v a_o brief_a of_o certain_a notorious_a falsification_n and_o untruth_n of_o the_o papist_n chap._n 1._o a_o answer_n to_o owlyglass_n exception_n concern_v thirteen_o untruth_n suppose_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o m._n sutcliffes_n challenge_n sect._n 1_o the_o first_o suppose_v untruth_n clear_v in_o 19_o page_n of_o my_o challenge_n and_o all_o direct_a contrary_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n owliglasse_n can_v find_v so_o much_o as_o any_o occasion_n of_o cavil_n in_o the_o 20._o pag●rapi●…_n numb_a 10._o in_o my_o former_a and_o in_o the_o latter_a cap._n 4_o numb_a 43._o bee_n take_v hold_v of_o this_o that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n use_v exorcism_n blowing_n salt_n spittle_n hallow_v water_n annoynting_n light_n and_o diverse_a ceremony_n neither_o use_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o practise_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v a_o untruth_n so_o manifest_a that_o caluin_n do_v confess_v it_o owlyglasse_n talk_v of_o untruth_n in_o other_o himself_o utter_v two_o gross_a untruth_n in_o the_o first_o charge_n but_o what_o if_o it_o be_v true_a and_o what_o if_o master_n caluin_n do_v not_o confess_v that_o which_o i_o say_v to_o be_v untruth_n be_v not_o owlyglasse_n where_o he_o go_v about_o to_o detect_v i_o of_o one_o untruth_n manifest_o take_v in_o a_o trey_n and_o detect_v to_o have_v utter_v two_o untruth_n in_o one_o breath_n he_o can_v though_o he_o will_v deny_v it_o well_o then_o let_v we_o see_v first_o whether_o my_o word_n contain_v untruth_n and_o next_o whether_o caluin_n confess_v so_o much_o or_o no._n of_o my_o proposition_n there_o be_v two_o part_n first_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o apostle_n use_v these_o ceremony_n now_o in_o question_n and_o second_o i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n now_o against_o the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o word_n owliglasse_n can_v object_v nothing_o neither_o do_v he_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v it_o but_o go_v he_o about_o to_o allege_v any_o thing_n yet_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o christ_n his_o institution_n will_v refute_v his_o allegation_n for_o in_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o be_v any_o such_o ceremony_n to_o be_v find_v against_o the_o second_o part_n he_o allege_v caluins_n word_n instit_fw-la lib._n 4._o ca._n 15._o art_n 19_o for_o exufflation_n hallow_v of_o water_n anoint_v and_o light_n and_o for_o exorcism_n in_o baptism_n he_o produce_v nazianzen_n for_o salt_n he_o quote_v the_o word_n of_o origen_n for_o spittle_n he_o cit_v the_o word_n of_o ambrose_n and_o the_o name_n of_o petrus_n chrysologus_fw-la but_o neither_o do_v caluin_n nor_o any_o of_o these_o father_n mention_n either_o the_o use_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o practice_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n nor_o do_v any_o father_n speak_v of_o all_o these_o ceremony_n together_o nor_o can_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o the_o sign_n and_o form_n of_o these_o ceremony_n be_v justify_v by_o father_n either_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o in_o any_o one_o singular_a church_n nor_o to_o come_v near_o to_o our_o adversary_n can_v any_o one_o concludent_fw-la argument_n be_v draw_v out_o of_o any_o of_o the_o father_n against_o that_o which_o i_o teach_v caluin_n say_v he_o know_v how_o ancient_a the_o ceremony_n of_o exufflation_n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la ca._n 15_o num_fw-la 19_o hallow_v of_o water_n of_o anoint_v and_o light_n be_v which_o if_o i_o shall_v confess_v yet_o can_v not_o owlyglasse_n conclude_v that_o such_o ceremony_n be_v use_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o
and_o yet_o that_o can_v not_o resolve_v himself_o in_o this_o point_n three_o ambrose_n doubt_v not_o but_o valentinian_n be_v save_v albeit_o he_o die_v without_o baptism_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la theodos●_n four_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o baptism_n viz._n of_o water_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o of_o blood_n and_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o without_o baptism_n man_n may_v be_v save_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la cap._n 6._o martyrdom_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o hart_n to_o god_n supply_v the_o defect_n of_o baptism_n and_o it_o be_v a_o common_a say_n that_o not_o the_o want_n but_o the_o contempt_n of_o baptism_n do_v damn_v those_o that_o depart_v this_o life_n without_o baptism_n final_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o opinion_n that_o condemn_v all_o die_a without_o baptism_n be_v lay_v upon_o these_o word_n nisi_fw-la quis_fw-la renatus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la ex_fw-la aqua_fw-la &_o spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la john_n 3._o non_fw-la potest_fw-la int●oire_fw-la in_o regnum_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n do_v speak_v these_o word_n of_o baptism_n no_o otherwise_o then_o he_o utter_v these_o word_n in_o the_o sixth_o of_o john_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o if_o then_o no_o interpreter_n that_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n will_v thereupon_o conclude_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v unless_o he_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n then_o do_v not_o the_o other_o word_n infer_v necessity_n of_o baptism_n unto_o s._n augustine_n word_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la anima_fw-la cap._n 9_o i_o answer_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o as_o die_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o seem_v to_o contemn_v baptism_n but_o diverse_a may_v die_v without_o baptism_n and_o yet_o not_o contemn_v it_o we_o say_v also_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n that_o none_o be_v save_v that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v but_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o tie_v god_n grace_n unto_o sacrament_n we_o do_v also_o speak_v of_o the_o ordinary_a external_a mean_n by_o which_o salvation_n be_v obtain_v but_o we_o exclude_v not_o extraordinary_a course_n i_o do_v also_o confess_v that_o infant_n die_v in_o original_a sin_n be_v damn_v to_o hell_n fire_n but_o i_o hope_v no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o all_o that_o die_v before_o baptism_n albeit_o they_o much_o desire_v it_o and_o believe_v in_o christ_n jesus_n dye_v in_o original_a sin_n but_o say_v owlyglasse_n you_o say_v that_o child_n by_o baptism_n be_v receyve_v into_o the_o ark_n of_o christ_n church_n psal_n 1●_n but_o he_o be_v simple_a to_o conclude_v thereof_o that_o none_o be_v receyve_v into_o the_o ark_n without_o baptism_n he_o say_v also_o that_o lay_v man_n and_o woman_n by_o the_o book_n be_v permit_v to_o baptise_v but_o he_o shall_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v shame_n for_o he_o to_o speak_v untruth_n who_o take_v on_o he_o to_o control_v other_o in_o that_o behalf_n he_o conclude_v final_o see_v the_o want_n of_o baptism_n do_v send_v infant_n to_o hell_n that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o his_o consequent_a be_v weak_a and_o of_o no_o value_n for_o many_o die_n for_o want_n of_o knowledge_n and_o for_o want_v of_o small_a matter_n and_o not_o only_o of_o baptism_n and_o yet_o god_n be_v not_o necessary_o tie_v to_o save_v none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v baptize_v sick_a man_n also_o die_v for_o want_v of_o physic_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o physic_v absolute_o necessary_a in_o this_o place_n therefore_o the_o detector_n wander_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o yet_o effect_v nothing_o sect._n 3_o that_o catholic_n use_v not_o after_o the_o popish_a manner_n to_o separate_v man_n &_o wife_n upon_o occasion_n of_o monastical_a vow_n his_o three_o accusation_n be_v ground_v upon_o these_o word_n they_o hold_v that_o by_o mutual_a consent_n the_o marry_a couple_n may_v depart_v asunder_o and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a afterward_o to_o company_n together_o a_o matter_n not_o only_o strange_a in_o the_o catholic_a church_n during_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n time_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o christ_n doctrine_n for_o what_o man_n can_v separate_v they_o who_o god_n have_v conjoin_v but_o seek_v to_o fasten_v a_o untruth_n upon_o i_o he_o commit_v a_o gross_a falsification_n himself_o for_o he_o cut_v off_o my_o word_n in_o the_o beginning_n see_v the_o challenge_n pag._n 20._o and_o midst_n of_o the_o sentence_n ●umbling_v the_o rest_n together_o very_o ill_o favored_o and_o mar_v the_o grace_n of_o my_o sentence_n with_o his_o lewd_a handle_n to_o help_v out_o the_o matter_n he_o allege_v other_o word_n of_o i_o out_o of_o the_o 35._o page_n where_o i_o say_v that_o this_o proceed_v from_o the_o new_a forge_n of_o popish_a invention_n but_o as_o before_o so_o in_o this_o place_n he_o make_v i_o speak_v of_o one_o thing_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n where_o i_o speak_v of_o prohibition_n and_o dissolve_v of_o marriage_n for_o spiritual_a kindred_n and_o dissolve_v of_o marriage_n contract_v and_o other_o matter_n in_o the_o plural_a and_o have_v frame_v my_o word_n after_o his_o own_o lewd_a fashion_n and_o curtal_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o charge_v i_o with_o a_o notable_a untruth_n as_o he_o call_v it_o for_o say_v he_o there_o be_v testimony_n and_o example_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o marry_a folk_n pag._n 15._o that_o with_o mutual_a consent_n vow_v perpetual_a chastity_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n he_o allege_v epiphanius_n hierom_n the_o 2._o council_n of_o arles_n &_o s._n augustine_n but_o first_o he_o mince_v the_o matter_n &_o dare_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n direct_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o i_o have_v write_v for_o i_o say_v that_o marry_a folk_n may_v not_o be_v so_o separate_v but_o that_o they_o may_v come_v together_o again_o and_o he_o talk_v of_o separation_n for_o a_o time_n now_o that_o which_o i_o say_v be_v most_o true_a &_o be_v prove_v first_o by_o our_o saviour_n word_n mat._n 19_o for_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o which_o god_n have_v join_v let_v not_o man_n separate_v therefore_o marriage_n be_v institute_v by_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v break_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n second_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 7._o be_v direct_a for_o i_o to_o those_o that_o be_v conjoin_v in_o matrimony_n say_v he_o not_o i_o command_v but_o the_o lord_n that_o the_o wife_n depart_v not_o from_o her_o husband_n and_o if_o man_n and_o wife_n for_o a_o time_n depart_v he_o will_v they_o to_o come_v together_o again_o lest_o the_o devil_n tempt_v they_o three_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n prove_v that_o i_o have_v say_v true_a scelus_fw-la est_fw-la say_v chrysostome_n homil_n 63._o in_o math._n 19_o in_o duo_fw-la dividere_fw-la unam_fw-la carnem_fw-la sic_fw-la et_fw-la mulieren_fw-mi a_o svo_fw-la viro_fw-la diripere_fw-la iniquissimum_fw-la est_fw-la so_o likewise_o say_v theophylact._n si●ut_o impium_fw-la est_fw-la svam_fw-la carnem_fw-la dividere_fw-la ita_fw-la et_fw-la coniuges_fw-la divellere_fw-la he_o say_v it_o be_v a_o wicked_a thing_n to_o separate_v marry_v folk_n four_o reason_n show_v that_o if_o marriage_n be_v a_o knot_n indivisible_a that_o marry_v folk_n can_v be_v upon_o pleasure_n sunder_v &_o that_o it_o be_v a_o presumption_n intolerable_a for_o the_o pope_n to_o dissolve_v marriage_n who_o institution_n be_v from_o god_n final_o it_o appear_v by_o bellarmine_n dispute_n de_fw-fr monachis_fw-la c._n 37._o who_o handle_v this_o point_n with_o more_o cunning_a than_o this_o poor_a swad_n yet_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o marry_a couple_n be_v separate_v for_o religion_n in_o ancient_a time_n or_o that_o this_o practice_n be_v conformable_a to_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n as_o i_o have_v verify_v against_o bellarmine_n in_o my_o treatise_n de_fw-fr monachis_fw-la as_o for_o the_o example_n &_o testimony_n allege_v by_o owliglasse_n they_o either_o be_v from_o the_o purpose_n or_o make_v against_o he_o neither_o epiphanius_n nor_o hierome_n say_v that_o marry_v folk_n use_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v unto_o holy_a order_n except_o they_o do_v promise_v perpetual_a continency_n from_o their_o wife_n as_o owliglasse_n with_o his_o glassy_a conscience_n affirm_v for_o neither_o of_o they_o have_v one_o word_n of_o promise_n or_o vow_n but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o haeres_fw-la 59_o ad_fw-la huc_fw-la viventem_fw-la et_fw-la liberos_fw-la gignentem_fw-la unius_fw-la uxoris_fw-la virum_fw-la say_v epiphanius_n non_fw-la suscipit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sed_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la ab_fw-la una_fw-la continuit_fw-la he_o have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o any_o promise_n nor_o do_v he_o deny_v that_o priest_n may_v return_v back_o again_o to_o company_n with_o their_o
the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o observe_v the_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n that_o will_v have_v man_n to_o eat_v dry_a meat_n for_o massepriest_n eat_v delicate_a fish_n and_o liquor_v the_o same_o well_o with_o wine_n therefore_o carranza_n falsifi_v this_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n in_o summa_fw-la council_n laodic_n and_o for_o dry_a meat_n put_v convenient_a meat_n fear_v as_o it_o shall_v seem_v lest_o he_o shall_v lose_v his_o good_a fish_n and_o good_a spanish_a seek_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n can_v 63._o speak_v nothing_o of_o fast_n establish_v by_o law_n but_o rather_o signify_v that_o fast_n be_v then_o upon_o especial_a occasion_n proclaim_v qui_fw-la tempore_fw-la indicti_fw-la ieiunij_fw-la say_v that_o council_n beside_o that_o in_o this_o canon_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o set_a form_n of_o fast_o nor_o do_v the_o council_n speak_v of_o other_o than_o clerk_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v not_o the_o only_a man_n that_o shall_v fast_o in_o lent_n final_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o form_n of_o fast_n on_o embre_v day_n and_o vigil_n of_o saint_n saint_n hieroms_n order_n of_o fast_v which_o he_o speak_v of_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o marcelia_n against_o montanus_n the_o romanist_n regard_v not_o for_o they_o fast_o between_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n which_o he_o do_v not_o like_a beside_o that_o he_o speak_v of_o no_o form_n of_o fast_v nor_o allow_v the_o fast_a or_o rather_o lenten_a feast_n of_o the_o romanist_n three_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v contrary_a to_o s._n augustine_n word_n in_o his_o epistle_n 86._o ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la where_o he_o show_v that_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o no_o day_n nor_o form_n of_o fast_v the_o sermon_n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la set_v out_o under_o saint_n augustine_n name_n be_v find_v to_o belong_v to_o diverse_a other_o in_o the_o 62._o sermon_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v sin_n not_o to_o fast_v lent_n but_o the_o romanist_n observe_v not_o the_o order_n of_o fast_v by_o that_o author_n prescribe_v for_o he_o fast_v without_o dine_a and_o observe_v not_o sunday_n and_o abstain_v from_o wine_n the_o romanist_n do_v all_o otherwise_o serm._n 62._o in_o isto_fw-la legitimo_fw-la ac_fw-la sacratissimo_fw-la tempore_fw-la say_v he_o exceptis_fw-la dominicis_fw-la diebus_fw-la nullus_fw-la prandere_fw-la praesumat_fw-la and_o again_o serm._n 64._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la speak_v of_o lenten_a fast_n quid_fw-la prodest_fw-la say_v he_o vinum_fw-la non_fw-la bibere_fw-la &_o iracundiae_fw-la veneno_fw-la inebriari_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n will_v not_o abstain_v from_o wine_n why_o do_v they_o urge_v we_o to_o observe_v or_o believe_v his_o form_n of_o fasts●_n that_o these_o sermon_n of_o fast_v be_v not_o s._n augustine_n it_o be_v apparent_a for_o that_o they_o contradict_v his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la leo_fw-la ser_n 2._o the_o pentecoste_n c._n 9_o talk_v of_o certain_a fast_n but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o romish_a embre_v fast_n owlyglasse_n will_v not_o prove_v neither_o must_v he_o think_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v all_o leoes_n epistle_n and_o sermon_n to_o be_v either_o write_v by_o he_o or_o authentical_a if_o owlyglasse_n understand_v not_o so_o much_o i_o will_v teach_v he_o and_o show_v he_o reason_n of_o my_o say_n in_o my_o next_o master_n willet_n say_v calixtus_n institute_v the_o four_o embre_v fast_n but_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o romanist_n and_o well_o know_v that_o the_o epistle_n that_o go_v under_o his_o name_n be_v counterfeit_a aerius_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 75._o and_o s._n augustine_n haeres_fw-la 53._o for_o that_o he_o hold_v ●hat_n fail_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v his_o error_n be_v that_o he_o hold_v quod_fw-la i●iunium_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la ordinatum_fw-la as_o epiphanius_n say_v but_o this_o touch_v we_o nothing_o for_o we_o know_v that_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a church_n never_o approve_v either_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n or_o the_o romish_a order_n concern_v fast_v see_v then_o owlyglasse_n be_v neither_o able_a to_o prove_v the_o romish_a order_n of_o lenten_a fast_n or_o of_o embre_v day_n nor_o bring_v any_o one_o author_n to_o justify_v the_o fast_n upon_o vigil_n of_o saint_n what_o a_o impudent_a fellow_n be_v he_o to_o affirm_v page_n 26._o that_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n enjoin_v christian_n to_o fast_o lend_v embre_v day_n and_o vigil_n of_o saint_n shuffle_n in_o vigil_n of_o saint_n into_o his_o conclusion_n of_o which_o he_o have_v not_o bring_v any_o proof_n in_o his_o premise_n second_o if_o he_o will_v contradict_v i_o why_o do_v he_o not_o speak_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o romish_a fast_n last_o what_o reason_n have_v he_o to_o charge_v i_o as_o have_v deal_v without_o conscience_n where_o i_o deny_v their_o manner_n of_o fast_n to_o be_v catholic_a and_o christian_n when_o he_o show_v neither_o conscience_n wit_n learning_n nor_o modesty_n in_o hold_v the_o contrary_a that_o i_o have_v deliver_v my_o opinion_n with_o good_a conscience_n and_o that_o he_o with_o a_o cauterised_a conscience_n pin_v to_o the_o pope_n sléeve_n have_v contradict_v my_o assertion_n it_o may_v also_o further_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n of_o romish_a fast_n for_o first_o the_o romanistes_n place_n their_o fast_n in_o abstinence_n from_o flesh_n and_o not_o in_o abstayn_v from_o meat_n or_o eat_v dry_a meat_n or_o abstinence_n from_o wine_n as_o the_o eastern_a church_n do_v second_o they_o eat_v large_a dinner_n and_o refrain_v not_o from_o they_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 62._o ser_n de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la among_o s._n augustine_n work_n think_v they_o shall_v three_o they_o believe_v that_o by_o eat_a flesh_n and_o red_a herring_n and_o such_o like_a meat_n they_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v for_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n which_o be_v not_o only_o erroneous_a but_o also_o most_o ridiculous_a four_o they_o teach_v that_o fast_n in_o lent_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o that_o the_o other_o fast_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n final_o they_o burn_v true_a christian_n for_o eat_v of_o a_o piece_n of_o flesh_n upon_o a_o fast_a day_n the_o which_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n who_o fashion_n we_o be_v far_o to_o prefer_v before_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o late_a apostatical_a synagogue_n of_o room_n our_o saviour_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o defile_v by_o any_o meat_n that_o enter_v into_o a_o man_n body_n quod_fw-la intrat_fw-la in_o os_fw-la say_v he_o matth._n 15._o non_fw-la coinquinat_fw-la hominem_fw-la we_o may_v also_o thereout_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v not_o meat_n that_o do_v satisfy_v us._n second_o the_o apostle_n do_v signify_v that_o this_o difference_n of_o meat_n proceed_v from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n and_o therefore_o ought_v now_o to_o cease_v if_o you_o be_v dead_a with_o christ_n coloss_n 2._o say_v the_o apostle_n from_o the_o element_n of_o this_o world_n why_o do_v you_o yet_o decree_n say_v touch_v not_o taste_v not_o handle_v not_o which_o all_o go_v into_o destruction_n in_o use_n according_a to_o the_o precept_n and_o doctrine_n of_o man_n three_o the_o apostle_n do_v also_o prophesy_v that_o in_o the_o latter_a time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n forbid_v to_o marry_v &_o enjoin_v abstinence_n from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v neither_o can_v this_o be_v understand_v of_o ancient_a heretic_n that_o think_v flesh_n unclean_a for_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o latter_a time_n and_o say_v in_o novissimis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la the_o papist_n also_o will_v not_o so_o severe_o forbid_v eat_v of_o flesh_n unless_o they_o think_v it_o a_o more_o holy_a matter_n to_o eat_v fish_n four_o tertullian_n show_v that_o christian_n fast_v upon_o occasion_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o not_o by_o constrainte_fw-fr of_o law_n indifferenter_fw-la ex_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la imperio_fw-la novae_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la say_v he_o adverse_a psychicos_fw-la pro_fw-la temporibus_fw-la et_fw-la causis_fw-la uniuscuiusque_fw-la ieiunabant_fw-la and_o this_o he_o speak_v of_o christian_n he_o be_v then_o teint_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o montanus_n augustine_n in_o his_o 86._o epistle_n to_o casulanus_fw-la testify_v that_o he_o find_v no_o set_a fast_n enjoin_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n quibus_fw-la diebus_fw-la non_fw-la oporteat_fw-la ieiunare_fw-la &_o quibus_fw-la oporteat_fw-la say_v he_o praecepto_fw-la domini_fw-la vel_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la definitum_fw-la six_o lend_v be_v diverse_o observe_v in_o time_n past_a
in_o england_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o imposture_n lie_n fable_n and_o superstitious_a toy_n i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o declare_v at_o full_a in_o some_o other_o treatise_n but_o least_o any_o may_v think_v that_o i_o wrong_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n from_o who_o all_o these_o abuse_n be_v derive_v i_o will_v pray_v every_o man_n that_o have_v skill_n and_o leisure_n with_o indifferency_n to_o read_v the_o legend_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n the_o rubtike_n of_o the_o mass_n their_o ritual_a and_o ceremonial_a book_n their_o treatise_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o fabulous_a lie_n of_o caesar_n baronius_n that_o filthy_a lie_a cardinal_n and_o such_o like_a testimonial_n as_o they_o prove_v their_o religion_n by_o now_o we_o will_v only_o talk_v of_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o romish_a catholic_a that_o every_o man_n may_v see_v what_o a_o bare_a fellow_n he_o be_v and_o how_o little_a religion_n and_o honesty_n he_o have_v i_o say_v that_o bellarmine_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v a_o good_a romish_n catholic_a and_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o profess_v the_o romish_a faith_n and_o communicate_v with_o the_o romanistes_n in_o their_o sacrament_n and_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o pope_n yea_o although_o he_o have_v neither_o inward_a faith_n nor_o charity_n nor_o other_o inward_a virtue_n and_o thereupon_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v like_a to_o the_o eunomian_o that_o teach_v that_o so_o a_o man_n be_v of_o their_o religion_n it_o skill_a not_o what_o sin_n he_o commit_v that_o bellarmine_n so_o teach_v it_o be_v apparent_a by_o his_o word_n in_o his_o second_o chapter_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la militanti_fw-la nostra_fw-la sententia_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o ecclesiam_fw-la unam_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o non_fw-la dvas_fw-la &_o illam_fw-la unam_fw-la &_o veram_fw-la coetum_fw-la hominum_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la christianae_fw-la fidei_fw-la professione_n &_o eorundem_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la communione_fw-la colligatum_fw-la sub_fw-la regimine_fw-la legitimorum_fw-la pastorum_fw-la ac_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la unius_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la vicarij_fw-la romani_fw-la pontificis_fw-la and_o afterward_o he_o say_v non_fw-la putamus_fw-la requiri_fw-la ullam_fw-la internam_fw-la virtutem_fw-la sed_fw-la tantum_fw-la externam_fw-la professionem_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o sacramentorum_fw-la communionem_fw-la scilicet_fw-la ut_fw-la aliquis_fw-la aliquo_fw-la modo_fw-la dici_fw-la possit_fw-la pars_fw-la verae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la de_fw-la qua_fw-la scripturae_fw-la loquuntur_fw-la if_o then_o he_o be_v a_o good_a roman_a catholic_a of_o who_o the_o true_a definition_n of_o a_o roman_a catholic_a may_v be_v affirm_v then_o may_v all_o wicked_a and_o damnable_a heretic_n be_v true_a romish_a catholic_n if_o they_o profess_v the_o romish_a faith_n and_o communicate_v with_o the_o romanist_n in_o sacrament_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o say_v owlyglasse_n bellarmine_n say_v not_o that_o such_o as_o want_v inward_a verrue_n be_v good_a catholic_n but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n church_n be_v not_o good_a catholic_n or_o as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o a_o good_a citizen_n of_o who_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o citizen_n may_v true_o be_v affirm_v and_o as_o if_o he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o good_a and_o true_a pope_n that_o be_v no_o good_a man_n of_o which_o point_n our_o adversary_n must_v beware_v lest_o he_o touch_v too_o rude_o the_o sore_n of_o his_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o a_o pope_n make_v no_o pope_n he_o say_v further_a that_o this_o objection_n of_o eunomianisme_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v charge_v upon_o lutheran_n and_o caluinist_n for_o so_o this_o papal_a swad_n do_v call_v christian_n and_o upon_o m._n willet_n they_o give_v excessive_a prerogative_n to_o faith_n and_o such_o as_o teach_v that_o a_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v lose_v but_o albeit_o he_o take_v his_o pleasure_n to_o rail_v upon_o i_o yet_o shall_v he_o forbear_v to_o wrong_v those_o that_o be_v either_o at_o rest_n or_o at_o the_o least_o never_o wrong_v he_o and_o in_o this_o place_n have_v his_o hand_n so_o full_a of_o i_o he_o may_v well_o have_v spare_v to_o contend_v with_o other_o be_v no_o match_n for_o any_o to_o his_o charge_n i_o answer_v that_o eunomius_n his_o heresy_n touch_v we_o nothing_o for_o neither_o do_v we_o deem_v they_o good_a christian_n as_o eunomius_n do_v that_o have_v no_o inward_a faith_n nor_o work_n nor_o do_v eunomius_n talk_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n as_o we_o do_v when_o we_o say_v the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o of_o his_o own_o new_a devise_a faith_n owlyglasse_n therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n for_o any_o thing_n do_v by_o i_o to_o cry_v out_o that_o bellarmine_n be_v abuse_v and_o his_o word_n falsify_v nor_o to_o charge_v we_o with_o eunomius_n his_o heresy_n but_o his_o consort_n will_v and_o just_o may_v think_v he_o a_o idle_a fellow_n if_o he_o can_v no_o better_o either_o clear_a himself_o or_o convince_v other_o especial_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o do_v both_o sect._n xiii_o of_o second_o marriage_n and_o whether_o the_o papist_n dislike_v they_o or_o no._n the_o last_o place_n out_o of_o which_o our_o adversary_n go_v about_o to_o fasten_v a_o imputation_n of_o falsification_n upon_o i_o be_v for_o that_o i_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n like_v to_o the_o montanist_n dislike_v second_v marriage_n and_o deny_v to_o bless_v they_o account_v these_o marriage_n not_o so_o holy_a a_o sacrament_n as_o the_o first_o and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v a_o slander_n for_o that_o papist_n do_v not_o mislike_v second_o marriage_n but_o here_o as_o before_o oftentimes_o he_o forget_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o discourse_n for_o he_o shall_v have_v convince_v i_o of_o falsification_n if_o he_o have_v remember_v what_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o place_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v any_o place_n by_o i_o allege_v or_o suppose_v to_o be_v falsify_v only_o to_o convince_v himself_o of_o notorious_a ignorance_n he_o have_v quote_v a_o marginal_a note_n belong_v not_o to_o this_o but_o to_o the_o next_o place_n as_o he_o may_v have_v perceive_v by_o the_o direction_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v blind_a and_o have_v set_v the_o same_o over_o against_o my_o word_n in_o this_o place_n as_o if_o i_o have_v prove_v my_o say_n of_o the_o montanistes_n by_o damascen_n chapter_n begin_v christianocategori_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la such_o a_o learned_a adversary_n have_v we_o to_o deal_v withal_o i_o answer_v further_o that_o i_o do_v not_o slander_v the_o papist_n as_o my_o adversary_n charge_v i_o when_o i_o say_v that_o they_o savour_v of_o montanisme_n in_o dislike_a second_v marriage_n for_o their_o counterfeit_a canon_n do_v pronounce_v they_o punishable_a by_o excommunication_n that_o marry_v more_o than_o once_o de_fw-fr his_o qui_fw-fr frequenter_a vxores_fw-la ducunt_fw-la say_v they_o &_o the_o his_o quae_fw-la saepius_fw-la nubunt_fw-la 31._o q_o 1._o the_o hi●_n tempus_fw-la quidem_fw-la poenitentiae_fw-la his_fw-la manifestum_fw-la constitutum_fw-la est_fw-la and_o afterward_o cum_fw-la praecipiatur_fw-la say_v they_o ibidem_fw-la secundis_fw-la nuptijs_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la tribuere_fw-la quis_fw-la erit_fw-la presbyter_n qui_fw-la propter_fw-la convivium_fw-la illis_fw-la consentiat_fw-la nuptijs_fw-la it_o appear_v therefore_o that_o they_o enjoin_v penance_n for_o second_v marriage_n as_o for_o a_o grievous_a crime_n and_o forbid_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o feast_n of_o such_o marry_a folk_n beside_o that_o they_o do_v not_o allow_v that_o a_o priest_n shall_v bless_v the_o second_o marriage_n nor_o do_v they_o account_v the_o second_o marriage_n to_o be_v so_o holy_a a_o sacrament_n as_o the_o first_o final_o syricius_n call_v marry_v folk_n c._n plurimos_fw-la do_v 82._o and_o defender_n of_o priest_n marriage_n follower_n of_o lust_n and_o teacher_n of_o vice_n sectatores_fw-la libidinum_fw-la c._n proposuisti_fw-la ibidem_fw-la &_o praeceptores_fw-la vitiorum_fw-la and_o innocentius_n as_o if_o they_o be_v unholy_a and_o can_v not_o please_v god_n and_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n exclude_v marry_v folk_n from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o show_v that_o they_o savour_v of_o montanisme_n if_o not_o worse_o but_o say_v owlyglasse_n if_o it_o be_v montanisme_n to_o deny_v second_o marriage_n to_o be_v so_o holy_a a_o sacrament_n as_o the_o first_o what_o then_o be_v they_o that_o deny_v first_o and_o second_o marriage_n to_o be_v any_o sacrament_n at_o all_o but_o this_o be_v a_o bald_a kind_n of_o dispute_v to_o propose_v a_o man_n argument_n otherwise_o than_o he_o frame_v it_o we_o do_v not_o say_v they_o be_v montanist_n in_o deny_v the_o second_o marriage_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o savour_v of_o montanisme_n in_o dislike_a second_v marriage_n and_o prefer_v the_o first_o before_o the_o second_o of_o which_o that_o be_v
and_o my_o answer_n my_o conscience_n and_o plain_a deal_n the_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n conscience_n do_v best_a know_v and_o i_o hope_v all_o the_o course_n of_o my_o writing_n will_v justify_v against_o all_o the_o cavil_n of_o such_o vain_a bangler_n my_o learning_n i_o acknowledge_v be_v not_o comparable_a to_o that_o which_o many_o of_o my_o brethren_n have_v but_o yet_o i_o hope_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o maintain_v a_o truth_n against_o the_o proud_a of_o the_o popish_a faction_n but_o be_v it_o never_o so_o slender_a yet_o until_o my_o book_n against_o bellarmine_n be_v answer_v in_o that_o plain_a and_o scholastical_a sort_n that_o i_o do_v answer_v he_o neither_o have_v owlyglasse_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o consort_n any_o reason_n to_o despise_v it_o or_o to_o object_v want_n of_o learning_n unto_o i_o yet_o see_v he_o do_v undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o i_o have_v no_o learning_n let_v we_o see_v whether_o owlyglasse_n have_v any_o better_a success_n in_o this_o then_o in_o his_o former_a allegation_n concern_v his_o suppose_a untruth_n and_o falsification_n first_o he_o say_v i_o bring_v such_o argument_n to_o prove_v the_o papist_n to_o be_v no_o catholic_n and_o to_o maintain_v new_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n as_o touch_v not_o they_o but_o wound_v the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o if_o this_o have_v be_v so_o why_o do_v not_o owlyglasse_n undertake_v to_o answer_v my_o argument_n why_o do_v he_o not_o dare_v to_o refute_v my_o discourse_n if_o they_o hurt_v the_o church_n of_o england_n no_o doubt_n but_o such_o caterpillar_n as_o he_o that_o seek_v our_o hurt_n and_o ruin_n will_v not_o have_v omit_v to_o take_v that_o advantage_n his_o word_n therefore_o be_v but_o vain_a brag_n and_o need_v no_o other_o refutation_n than_o his_o own_o lewd_a performance_n in_o this_o encounter_n and_o deep_a silence_n in_o the_o rest_n next_o he_o say_v he_o will_v take_v a_o scantling_n of_o my_o learning_n nothing_o answerable_a to_o my_o look_n and_o countenance_n but_o his_o scantling_n be_v very_o short_a and_o unproportionable_a be_v but_o one_o only_a argument_n beside_o that_o it_o show_v that_o both_o learning_n and_o honesty_n be_v very_o scant_o with_o he_o for_o where_o i_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o it_o want_v true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n the_o palfrey_n fellow_n only_o repeat_v my_o word_n whereby_o i_o prove_v that_o every_o true_a church_n have_v true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n but_o dare_v not_o set_v down_o my_o word_n whereby_o i_o show_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v neither_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n and_o where_o he_o touch_v any_o reason_n of_o i_o he_o mar_v it_o with_o his_o lewd_a handle_n and_o mangle_v my_o whole_a discourse_n omit_v my_o three_o last_o reason_n and_o not_o dare_v to_o set_v they_o down_o i_o will_v therefore_o now_o let_v the_o ignorant_a idiot_n know_v that_o my_o reason_n whereby_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n at_o this_o time_n be_v strong_a and_o effectual_a and_o that_o his_o cavillation_n against_o my_o word_n be_v vain_a and_o frivolous_a first_o then_o i_o say_v that_o no_o man_n have_v ordinary_a power_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n or_o priest_n but_o he_o that_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v neither_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n ergo_fw-la the_o proposition_n our_o adversary_n deny_v not_o the_o assumption_n i_o prove_v by_o these_o argument_n first_o the_o pope_n be_v ordain_v priest_n but_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o to_o say_v mass_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a but_o neither_o do_v this_o ordination_n make_v a_o priest_n nor_o have_v true_a priest_n and_o elder_n ever_o any_o such_o ordination_n that_o this_o ordination_n do_v not_o make_v a_o priest_n i_o prove_v for_o that_o thereby_o the_o ordain_v neither_o receive_v power_n to_o preach_v nor_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o priesthood_n consist_v if_o they_o receive_v any_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n but_o the_o papist_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o appear_v by_o bellarmine_n large_a dispute_n lib._n 1._o &_o 2._o the_o sacrif_n missae_fw-la further_o this_o ordination_n do_v not_o give_v to_o priest_n the_o right_a of_o apostolical_a succession_n which_o consist_v in_o preach_v and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n which_o our_o saviour_n commit_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n as_o appear_v by_o christ_n word_n matth._n 28._o that_o priest_n in_o ancient_a time_n never_o have_v any_o such_o ordination_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o commission_n that_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n matth._n 28._o by_o the_o office_n of_o pastor_n describe_v ephes_n 4._o and_o 1._o tim._n 3._o and_o tit._n 1._o where_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o sacrifice_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a neither_o do_v this_o clause_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o any_o author_n signify_v sacrifice_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a it_o appear_v also_o by_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n and_o ancient_a formulary_n in_o the_o 4._o council_n of_o carthage_n priest_n be_v ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o not_o to_o sacrifice_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a this_o argument_n our_o adversary_n for_o all_o his_o contemptuous_a speech_n of_o my_o argument_n dare_v not_o once_o touch_v second_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o ordain_v to_o teach_v or_o govern_v a_o certain_a flock_n but_o to_o be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n bellar._n lib._n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n c._n 31._o prooem_n clement_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o little_a demi_a god_n upon_o the_o earth_n with_o power_n over_o purgatory_n and_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o hell_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o this_o power_n then_o be_v he_o not_o pope_n but_o this_o power_n be_v not_o where_o deliver_v by_o any_o good_a commission_n to_o any_o nor_o do_v it_o belong_v to_o any_o bishop_n for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v yet_o learn_v for_o if_o it_o do_v then_o shall_v all_o bishop_n have_v that_o power_n owlyglasse_n therefore_o may_v do_v well_o to_o show_v we_o this_o power_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n or_o else_o his_o silence_n will_v teach_v he_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o bishop_n bellarmine_n tell_v we_o of_o pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la and_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n but_o he_o must_v find_v out_o a_o better_a commission_n for_o the_o pope_n or_o else_o all_o bishop_n will_v have_v like_o power_n and_o the_o pope_n will_v prove_v to_o have_v no_o power_n unless_o he_o feed_v and_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n which_o by_o owlyglasse_n i_o be_o assure_v will_v not_o be_v prove_v three_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o feed_v the_o flock_n by_o teach_v or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n or_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o other_o bishop_n do_v but_o contrariwise_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v emperor_n or_o governor_n of_o rome_n which_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n never_o do_v but_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o king_n and_o a_o bishop_n both_o together_o nor_o a_o bishop_n without_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n for_o episcopatus_fw-la as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o be_v a_o work_n and_o not_o a_o title_n o●_n honour_n be_v opus_fw-la and_o not_o only_o ho●os_fw-la our_o adversary_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v donatisme_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o efficacy_n of_o sacrament_n do_v depend_v upon_o the_o good_a or_o bad_a life_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o that_o we_o be_v to_o harken_v to_o those_o that_o sit_v in_o moses_n his_o chair_n albeit_o they_o be_v pharisee_n and_o bad_a man_n otherwise_o and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o diverse_a testimony_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o harmony_n of_o our_o confession_n be_v copious_a where_o no_o need_n be_v and_o silent_a when_o he_o shall_v answer_v but_o all_o this_o be_v no_o more_o to_o purpose_n then_o if_o he_o shall_v tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o horse_n nest_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n mule_n and_o mulet_n for_o what_o be_v that_o to_o i_o or_o other_o that_o say_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n or_o popish_a bishop_n be_v not_o lawful_a bishop_n nor_o have_v power_n to_o administer_v sacrament_n because_o they_o be_v sodomite_n adulterer_n and_o wicked_a man_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o bishop_n at_o all_o because_o he_o do_v not_o opus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la he_o will_v perhaps_o say_v he_o do_v opus_fw-la episcopi_fw-la but_o then_o he_o must_v show_v that_o he_o feed_v the_o
flock_n by_o teach_v and_o that_o he_o do_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o baptism_n orderly_o and_o ordinary_o as_o other_o bishop_n do_v wherein_o i_o believe_v he_o will_v fail_v four_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n advance_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o the_o principal_a patriarch_n of_o antichrist_n kingdom_n but_o light_n and_o darkness_n shall_v as_o soon_o concur_v as_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o one_o person_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o he_o be_v antichrist_n in_o my_o five_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n against_o bellar._n which_o because_o he_o so_o abound_v in_o learning_n and_o i_o have_v none_o i_o will_v pray_v he_o to_o answer_v with_o his_o great_a learning_n and_o especial_o see_v it_o make_v so_o much_o for_o the_o credit_n of_o his_o father_n the_o pope_n that_o beget_v he_o on_o a_o strumpet_n the_o hore_n of_o babylon_n his_o maships_n mother_n a_o brave_a fellow_n he_o be_v no_o doubt_n that_o be_v so_o well_o bear_v of_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o if_o his_o stomach_n will_v brook_v no_o latin_a let_v he_o refute_v my_o answer_n to_o parson_n wardword_n if_o not_o all_o yet_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v the_o pope_n final_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n a_o apostata_fw-la and_o a_o most_o notorious_a simoniacal_a person_n enter_v by_o brigue_n and_o faction_n and_o composition_n with_o the_o spanish_a king_n and_o cardinal_n as_o be_v notorious_a to_o the_o world_n and_o appear_v in_o every_o conclave_n and_o be_v not_o dissemble_v by_o popish_a writer_n but_o such_o by_o canon_n albeit_o otherwise_o bishop_n be_v suspend_v from_o ordain_v bishop_n or_o confer_v order_n that_o they_o be_v heretic_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v unless_o owlyglasse_n can_v show_v that_o the_o point_n we_o have_v handle_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n of_o our_o former_a discourse_n be_v no_o heresy_n which_o if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o pain_n will_v make_v he_o cardinal_a that_o the_o pop_z be_v apostatate_n it_o appear_v for_o that_o they_o have_v decline_v from_o the_o ancient_a faith_n as_o i_o have_v likewise_o declare_v in_o my_o former_a challenge_n that_o they_o be_v simoniacal_a creature_n their_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o the_o papacy_n and_o of_o all_o ecclesiastical_a live_n of_o mass_n of_o sacrament_n of_o faculty_n do_v manifest_o declare_v and_o that_o this_o be_v a_o common_a fault_n of_o pope_n it_o appear_v by_o their_o rule_n of_o chancery_n by_o the_o penitentiaries_n tax_v vid._n regul_n cancellar_n &_o penitent_a by_o the_o gloss_n of_o their_o canon_n by_o albericus_n de_fw-fr rosate_fw-it in_o verbo_fw-la roma_fw-la by_o theodorica_fw-la niems_fw-la treatise_n of_o schism_n by_o baptist_n of_o mantua_n and_o all_o story_n that_o write_v any_o truth_n neither_o be_v this_o a_o fault_n of_o late_o creep_v into_o that_o see_v quem_fw-la dabis_fw-la mihi_fw-la de_fw-la tota_fw-la maxima_fw-la urbe_fw-la say_v bernard_n lib._n 4_o de_fw-la consid_fw-la ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la quite_o in_o papam_fw-la receperit_fw-la pretio_fw-la seu_fw-la spe_fw-la pretij_fw-la non_fw-la interueniente_fw-la he_o signify_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v choose_v by_o simony_n without_o simony_n certes_o no_o cardinal_n can_v see_v to_o find_v the_o pope_n chair_n by_o this_o it_o may_v also_o appear_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n or_o priest_n for_o first_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n second_o the_o bishop_n neither_o preach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o account_n that_o any_o part_n of_o their_o episcopal_a function_n three_o pope_n joane_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n or_o priest_n be_v a_o woman_n but_o all_o that_o have_v live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n along_o time_n have_v be_v ordain_v by_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v ordain_v by_o she_o or_o by_o bishop_n that_o be_v make_v by_o she_o four_o all_o priest_n be_v ordain_v to_o sacrifice_v for_o quick_a &_o dead_a as_o appear_v by_o machabeus_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr missis_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la pro_fw-la ordinibus_fw-la conferen_fw-mi this_fw-mi bellarmine_n also_o say_v that_o preiste_n be_v make_v by_o these_o word_n accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrificlum_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n which_o be_v no_o sufficient_a ordination_n nor_o give_v priests_n power_n either_o to_o preach_v or_o administer_v sacrament_n but_o rather_o a_o power_n in_o ancient_a time_n never_o belong_v to_o priest_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v against_o bellarmine_n in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr sacrificio_fw-la missae_fw-la five_o no_v simoniacal_a person_n or_o heretic_n have_v power_n to_o order_v other_o and_o if_o they_o do_v it_o their_o ordination_n by_o canon_n be_v declare_v void_a &_o they_o be_v pronounce_v irregular_a and_o this_o i_o think_v owlyglasse_n will_v not_o deny_v but_o he_o will_v answer_v percase_o that_o the_o popish_a bishop_n be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o simonicall_a person_n let_v he_o therefore_o if_o he_o will_v make_v his_o answer_n good_a make_v answer_n to_o my_o objection_n concern_v the_o heresy_n and_o simonye_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n six_o the_o popish_a bishop_n be_v all_o slave_n of_o antichrist_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o slavish_a oath_n c._n ego_fw-la n._n de_fw-fr iureiurando_fw-la if_o then_o the_o pope_n be_v prove_v antichrist_n and_o the_o adversary_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n his_o adherent_n can_v be_v deem_v true_a bishop_n final_o albeit_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v a_o certain_a form_n of_o ordination_n and_o bishop_n and_o priest_n so_o call_v yet_o nether_a can_v the_o ordination_n be_v account_v lawful_a be_v contrary_a to_o canon_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v deem_v true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n that_o neither_o preach_v that_o which_o christ_n command_v nor_o observe_v his_o commission_n nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n oftentimes_o also_o the_o pope_n have_v ordain_v boy_n ignorant_a person_n utter_o uncapable_a of_o episcopal_a function_n bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o such_o be_v so_o ordain_v never_o do_v any_o part_n of_o ministerial_a function_n if_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v like_o her_o bishop_n then_o as_o she_o have_v false_a and_o defective_a bishop_n so_o be_v she_o a_o false_a and_o defective_a church_n but_o say_v owlyglasse_n pag_n ●2_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v make_v such_o wholesome_a decree_n concern_v the_o diligent_a and_o often_o teach_v and_o preach_v of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o master_n sutcliffe_n can_v find_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o complaint_n but_o if_o he_o have_v let_v down_o these_o wholesome_a decree_n he_o will_v have_v be_v much_o ashamed_a of_o the_o decree_n themselves_o and_o more_o of_o the_o slender_a execution_n of_o they_o for_o council_n trid._n sess_n 5_o c._n 2._o they_o decree_v that_o bishop_n shall_v teach_v by_o themselves_o or_o other_o so_o that_o by_o this_o rule_n woman_n may_v be_v priest_n for_o they_o may_v teach_v by_o other_o &_o this_o may_v be_v fulfil_v if_o bishop_n never_o teach_v at_o all_o beside_o that_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v preach_v by_o other_o or_o set_v up_o lousy_a friar_n to_o prate_v in_o pulpit_n as_o now_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n our_o saviour_n christ_n bid_v his_o disciple_n preach_v themselves_o or_o else_o he_o will_v not_o have_v send_v they_o and_o s._n peter_n preach_v himself_o and_o use_v no_o deputation_n for_o the_o matter_n as_o now_o the_o romanistes_n do_v furthermore_o now_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o law_n be_v so_o neglect_v that_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o owlyglasse_n albeit_o he_o have_v well_o frequent_v all_o corner_n of_o rome_n have_v hear_v the_o pope_n preach_v and_o when_o the_o old_a cardinal_n of_o lorrein_a offer_v to_o preach_v he_o be_v deride_v for_o his_o labour_n of_o all_o his_o compagnions_n so_o unséemly_a a_o thing_n it_o seem_v for_o a_o cardinal_n &_o bishop_n to_o preach_v he_o answer_v further_a that_o i_o will_v be_v loath_a that_o our_o church_n shall_v continue_v no_o long_o than_o bishop_n do_v their_o duty_n in_o preach_v and_o feed_v but_o he_o do_v wrong_v our_o bishop_n to_o compare_v they_o to_o romish_a prelate_n that_o neither_o preach_v nor_o think_v that_o preach_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n unless_o it_o be_v some_o friar_n or_o fox_n inroab_v with_o bishop_n apparel_n preach_v not_o nor_o speak_v more_o than_o stock_n and_o image_n in_o church_n he_o do_v also_o mistake_v i_o much_o if_o he_o think_v that_o i_o conclude_v that_o any_o congregation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n where_o bishop_n do_v not_o their_o duty_n for_o that_o be_v
that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o cause_n which_o by_o private_a man_n error_n can_v be_v either_o charge_v or_o prejudice_v but_o if_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o the_o papist_n fly_v in_o all_o controversy_n and_o extremity_n commit_v falsification_n then_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o popery_n quite_o ruin_v and_o overthrow_v for_o he_o be_v the_o sanders_n rock_n &_o bellar._n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o lib._n de_fw-fr pontiff_a rock_n and_o bellar._n ibid._n &_o lib_n 2._o the_o pontiff_a rom._n &_o stapleton_n doctrinal_a princip_n foundation_n upon_o who_o the_o papist_n build_v all_o their_o religion_n again_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v practise_v these_o falsification_n then_o be_v no_o trust_n to_o be_v give_v to_o she_o if_o both_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o lie_v and_o fable_n then_o be_v the_o pope_n no_o upright_o judge_v but_o a_o lie_a hypocrite_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n nor_o a_o mistress_n of_o truth_n but_o a_o mistress_n of_o error_n and_o lie_n let_v we_o therefore_o see_v whether_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o in_o this_o point_n be_v more_o just_o charge_v than_o we_o and_o whether_o they_o be_v clear_a of_o this_o fault_n or_o no._n for_o that_o be_v a_o point_n far_o more_o material_a than_o any_o thing_n which_o the_o adversary_n can_v devise_v against_o us._n let_v we_o also_o consider_v how_o bellarmine_n &_o baronius_n and_o other_o the_o pope_n agent_n have_v acquit_v themselves_o in_o their_o narration_n and_o allegation_n for_o so_o it_o may_v best_o appear_v how_o unaduised_o this_o detector_n begin_v his_o quarrel_n our_o adversary_n be_v so_o notorious_a offender_n in_o tell_v untruth_n and_o commit_v most_o gross_a and_o wicked_a forgerye_n and_o we_o so_o clear_a and_o innocent_a at_o the_o least_o from_o all_o willfulnesse_n violence_n and_o malice_n if_o not_o from_o error_n l._n qui_fw-la testamentum_fw-la ff_n ad_fw-la leg_n corneliam_n de_fw-fr falsis_fw-la whosoever_o shall_v conce●e_v or_o hide_v away_o a_o testament_n or_o take_v it_o from_o a_o man_n or_o shall_v blot_v it_o or_o add_v by_o interline_v or_o else_o shall_v forge_v or_o write_v a_o false_a testament_n or_o exhibit_v it_o or_o sign_n it_o or_o use_v it_o and_o fraudulent_o rehearse_v it_o be_v punishable_a as_o guilty_a of_o forgery_n by_o the_o law_n cornelia_n concern_v forgery_n and_o falsity_n and_o this_o be_v the_o determination_n of_o paulus_n the_o lawyer_n and_o allow_v by_o all_o man_n of_o understanding_n and_o judgement_n in_o law_n qui_fw-la testamentum_fw-la amoverit_fw-la celaverit_fw-la eripuerit_fw-la deleverit_fw-la interleverit_fw-la subiecerit_fw-la resignaverit_n say_v paulus_n the_o lawyer_n quive_v testamentum_fw-la falsum_fw-la scripserit_fw-la signaverit_n recitaverit_fw-la etc._n etc._n legis_fw-la corneliae_fw-la poena_n damnatur_fw-la those_o also_o be_v guilty_a and_o by_o this_o law_n punishable_a ibidem_fw-la quorum_fw-la dolo_fw-la malo_fw-la id_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la by_o who_o procurement_n and_o fraud_n any_o of_o the_o foresay_a point_n be_v commit_v but_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o way_n offend_v against_o this_o law_n as_o be_v most_o evidente_a by_o many_o particular_n falsification_n 1_o first_o they_o do_v suppress_v as_o much_o as_o they_o can_v the_o eternal_a testament_n of_o almighty_a god_n contain_v in_o the_o book_n which_o we_o for_o this_o cause_n call_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o simple_o do_v they_o prohibit_v all_o translation_n of_o scripture_n make_v by_o any_o of_o our_o doctor_n &_o not_o without_o streite_z limitation_n do_v they_o permit_v christians_n too_o have_v scripture_n translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n by_o themselves_o public_o by_o no_o mean_n will_v they_o have_v scripture_n red_a be_v translate_v into_o tongue_n understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n and_o all_o these_o three_o point_n be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o the_o index_n of_o prohibit_v book_n set_v out_o by_o pius_fw-la quartus_fw-la and_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n speak_v of_o our_o man_n translation_n librorum_fw-la veteris_fw-la testamenti_fw-la versiones_fw-la viris_fw-la tantum_fw-la pijs_fw-la &_o doctis_fw-la index_n lib_n prohib_n regul_n 3._o say_v he_o iudicio_fw-la episcopi_fw-la concedi_fw-la poterunt_fw-la and_o afterward_o versiones_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la etc._n etc._n nemini_fw-la concedantur_fw-la speak_v of_o vulgar_a translation_n of_o scripture_n ibid._n regula_fw-la 4._o he_o say_v hac_fw-la in_o parte_fw-la iudicio_fw-la episcopi_fw-la aut_fw-la inquisitoris_fw-la stetur_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la consilio_fw-la parochi_fw-la vel_fw-la confessarij_fw-la bibliorum_fw-la a_o catholicis_fw-la authoribus_fw-la versorum_fw-la lectionem_fw-la in_o vulgari_fw-la lingua_fw-la concedere_fw-la possint_fw-la so_o it_o appear_v they_o first_o absolute_o forbid_v all_o vulgar_a translation_n make_v by_o any_o of_o our_o doctor_n and_o second_o with_o hard_a condition_n grant_v licence_n &_o that_o to_o very_a few_o to_o read_v their_o own_o vulgar_a translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o three_o that_o they_o do_v forbid_v all_o latin_a translation_n make_v by_o we_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o with_o condition_n and_o limitation_n permit_v our_o translation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v read_v and_o that_o of_o very_a few_o council_n trid._n sess_n 22._o c._n 9_o in_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n they_o also_o signify_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o by_o their_o practice_n we_o gather_v that_o they_o think_v the_o public_a read_n of_o scripture_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n to_o be_v nothing_o for_o their_o profit_n and_o purpose_n who_o then_o see_v not_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v the_o pope_n and_o romish_a church_n endevore_fw-mi to_o suppress_v god_n testament_n and_o show_v themselves_o therein_o notorious_a falsary_n falsification_n 2_o second_o they_o burn_v the_o holy_a scripture_n under_o pretence_n of_o false_a translation_n as_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a witness_n and_o by_o their_o own_o practice_n and_o i_o think_v they_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o have_v burn_v scripture_n translate_v by_o our_o doctor_n &_o will_v defend_v it_o yet_o to_o corrupt_v or_o tear_v or_o spoil_v a_o testament_n be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o falsary_a as_o these_o word_n declare_v si_fw-la quis_fw-la test●mentum_fw-la deleverit_fw-la neither_o can_v the_o law_n speak_v more_o plain_o against_o papist_n unless_a it_o have_v say_v si_fw-la quis_fw-la testamentum_fw-la dei_fw-la combusserit_fw-la falsification_n 3_o three_o they_o have_v deprive_v the_o lord_n people_n of_o the_o cup_n which_o our_o saviour_n christ_n call_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o his_o blood_n hic_fw-la est_fw-la calix_fw-la say_v he_o nowm_fw-la testamentum_fw-la in_o sanguine_fw-la meo_fw-la luc._n 22._o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n they_o decree_v ut_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la a_o laicis_fw-la sub_fw-la una_fw-la specie_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la recipiatur_fw-la that_o be_v sess_n 13._o that_o lie_v man_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n only_o under_o one_o kind_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n they_o pronounce_v they_o anathema_n or_o accurse_a that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n sess_n 21._o c._n 1._o &_o 2._o or_o that_o shall_v deny_v that_o they_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communicant_n and_o minister_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o for_o just_a and_o reasonable_a cause_n whether_o then_o the_o lord_n cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n or_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v show_v themselves_o to_o be_v notorious_a falsarye_n the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n be_v clear_a si_fw-la quis_fw-la testamentum_fw-la celaverit_fw-la amoverit_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v whosoever_o do_v conceal_v or_o keep_v a_o testament_n out_o of_o the_o way_n he_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o a_o falsary_a the_o same_o also_o be_v apparent_a for_o that_o they_o go_v about_o to_o break_v the_o seal_n of_o god_n testament_n and_o although_o man_n can_v or_o will_v not_o punish_v this_o falsity_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o in_o the_o mass_n priest_n yet_o god_n will_v assure_o punish_v so_o notorious_a a_o falsification_n of_o his_o eternal_a testament_n falsification_n 4_o four_o the_o pope_n and_o romish_a church_n have_v add_v to_o god_n eternal_a testament_n corrupt_v the_o same_o by_o their_o tradition_n and_o makg_v iunnwritten_a tradition_n equal_a to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n omnes_fw-la libros_fw-la tam_fw-la veteris_fw-la quam_fw-la novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la sess_n 4_o council_n trid._n say_v the_o pope_n slave_n assemble_v at_o trent_n cum_fw-la utriusque_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la sit_fw-la author_n nec_fw-la non_fw-la traditiones_fw-la ipsas_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la tum_fw-la ad_fw-la mores_fw-la pertinentes_fw-la tanquam_fw-la vel_fw-la ore-tenus_o a_o christo_fw-la vel_fw-la
father_n and_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v forge_v their_o own_o testimony_n therefore_o do_v condemn_v they_o to_o be_v falsary_n if_o they_o use_v these_o false_a writing_n and_o allege_v they_o as_o they_o do_v most_o common_o falsification_n 34_o and_o lest_o any_o man_n may_v doubt_v whether_o the_o papist_n be_v falsary_n or_o no_o in_o their_o expurgatory_n index_n they_o open_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v falsary_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la pium_fw-la 5._o ante_fw-la bibliothec_fw-la san●am_fw-la for_o what_o be_v falsity_n but_o to_o take_v away_o to_o add_v to_o alter_v man_n writing_n but_o this_o the_o papist_n do_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la sixtus_n senensis_n confess_v that_o pius_n 5._o cause_v all_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v purge_v and_o cleanse_v expurgari_fw-la &_o ernaculari_fw-la curasti_fw-la say_v he_o omne_fw-la catholicorum_fw-la scriptorum_fw-la ac_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la veterum_fw-la patrum_fw-la scripta_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la aetatis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la faecibus_fw-la contaminata_fw-la &_o venenis_fw-la infecta_fw-la but_o under_o colour_n of_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v away_o of_o thing_n noxious_a it_o appear_v the_o romanist_n have_v take_v out_o such_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o father_n as_o make_v against_o they_o as_o for_o other_o writer_n they_o alter_v and_o mangle_v they_o at_o their_o pleasure_n in_o bertram_n they_o change_v visibiliter_fw-la into_o invisibiliter_fw-la index_n expurgator_n all_o that_o come_v between_o the_o word_n considerandum_fw-la quoque_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o panc_fw-la illo_fw-la and_o the_o sentence_n beginning_n sed_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la exterius_fw-la geritur_fw-la they_o dash_v out_o and_o so_o they_o deal_v in_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o censure_n of_o erasmus_n and_o annotation_n of_o vives_z upon_o s._n augustine_n and_o in_o the_o scholiaes_fw-la marginal_a note_n and_o index_n of_o augustine_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o they_o take_v themselves_o liberty_n to_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v capnioes_n speculum_fw-la oculare_a fabres_fw-es commentary_n on_o the_o gospel_n and_o epistle_n beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la his_o annotation_n on_o tertullian_n they_o falsify_v most_o impudent_o likewise_o do_v they_o deal_v with_o all_o late_a writer_n not_o long_o since_o we_o ●…nde_v they_o have_v corrupt_v both_o the_o gloss_n and_o sometime_o the_o text_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o this_o be_v now_o a_o common_a practice_n of_o jebusite_n according_a to_o a_o direction_n and_o commission_n give_v they_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o corrupt_v all_o author_n that_o pass_v their_o finger_n possevima_fw-la shameless_a companion_n curtalling_a ancient_a writing_n say_v ex_fw-la lib._n 2._o hermetis_n col_fw-fr 16._o select_a bibliotheca_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 19_o deleatur_fw-la rectè_fw-la audisti_fw-la &_o paulò_fw-la pòst_fw-la qui_fw-la enim_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la aut_fw-la credituri_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o transitu_fw-la sanctae_fw-la mariae_fw-la qui_fw-la falsò_fw-la ascribitur_fw-la b._n melitoni_n deleantur_fw-la illa_fw-la verba_fw-la in_fw-la solatium_fw-la ferendum_fw-la angugustijs_fw-la quae_fw-la superuenturae_fw-la sunt_fw-la mihi_fw-la deleatur_fw-la etiam_fw-la à_fw-la capite_fw-la 8._o usque_fw-la in_o finem_fw-la tractatus_fw-la ex_fw-la libro_fw-la nicolai_n cabasilae_fw-la deleantur_fw-la capita_fw-la 29._o &_o 30._o in_o quaestionibus_fw-la anastasij_n quaest_n 87._o scribatur_fw-la in_o margin_n haec_fw-la intelligenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la gloria_fw-la corporis_fw-la the_o treatise_n of_o antonius_n abbas_n he_o turn_v and_o mangle_v most_o impudent_o and_o practise_v the_o like_a in_o diverse_a other_o author_n work_n if_o then_o any_o man_n seek_v for_o falsary_n let_v he_o go_v to_o papist_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o forge_v and_o falsification_n and_o which_o without_o forgery_n can_v maintain_v their_o new_a forge_a devise_n as_o themselves_o by_o their_o index_n of_o book_n prohibit_v confess_v and_o by_o book_n plain_o falsify_v it_o manifesty_n appear_v final_o they_o be_v falsary_n that_o produce_v or_o suborn_v false_a witness_n or_o that_o use_v their_o deposition_n poena_n legis_fw-la corneliae_fw-la irrogatur_fw-la ei_fw-la l_o poena_fw-la ff_n ad_fw-la l._n cornel_n de_fw-fr falsis_fw-la say_v marcianus_n qui_fw-la falsas_fw-la testationes_fw-la faciendas_fw-la testimoniave_v falsa_fw-la inspicienda_fw-la dolo_fw-la malo_fw-la coierit_fw-la but_o the_o pope_n produce_v counterfeit_a father_n and_o legend_n to_o testify_v for_o they_o they_o have_v also_o suborn_v diverse_a vile_a person_n to_o speak_v shame_n of_o honest_a man_n as_o bolsecus_n of_o caluin_n laingius_n of_o buchanan_n and_o other_o sanders_n rishton_n robert_n patsons_n and_o creswell_n against_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o late_a lord_n treasurer_n the_o earl_n of_o leicester_n sir_n christopher_n hatton_n lord_n chancellor_n sir_n francis_n walsingham_n and_o other_o the_o falsehood_n of_o these_o witness_n be_v convince_v by_o diverse_a public_a act_n and_o sufficient_a witness_n bolsecus_fw-la in_o a_o synod_n in_o france_n public_o recant_v his_o slanderous_a book_n and_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v hire_v and_o draw_v on_o by_o the_o adversary_n parson_n shall_v hear_v some_o of_o his_o lie_n hereafter_o his_o conscience_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o have_v often_o tell_v he_o of_o his_o lie_v wherefore_o unless_o owlyglasse_n can_v answer_v in_o these_o point_n the_o accusation_n of_o falsification_n do_v fall_v on_o his_o dear_a friend_n far_o more_o heavy_o then_o upon_o us._n chap._n v._o a_o brief_a catalogue_n of_o certain_a notorious_a lie_v utter_v and_o record_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o go_v about_o to_o comprehend_v in_o one_o chapter_n all_o the_o untruth_n and_o lie_v of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o synagogue_n adhere_v unto_o they_o be_v as_o possible_a as_o to_o measure_v the_o sand_n or_o to_o bring_v the_o ocean_n sea_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o vessel_n i_o will_v therefore_o out_o of_o many_o choose_v some_o few_o that_o by_o the_o example_n of_o some_o part_n every_o man_n may_v judge_v of_o the_o rest_n and_o discern_v and_o hate_v the_o false_a pack_v of_o papist_n and_o their_o adherent_n falsification_n 1_o innocentius_n the_o first_o or_o rather_o some_o other_o pope_n under_o his_o name_n affirm_v that_o none_o do_v find_v church_n in_o italy_n france_n spain_n africa_n sicily_n and_o land_n lie_v between_o these_o country_n but_o those_o who_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n make_v priest_n he_o deni_v also_o that_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o those_o country_n beside_o s._n peter_n and_o those_o which_o he_o send_v cum_fw-la manifestum_fw-la fit_n say_v he_o in_o omnem_fw-la italiam_fw-la gallias_n hispanias_n c._n quis_fw-la nesciat_fw-la do_v 11._o africam_fw-la atque_fw-la siciliam_fw-la insulasque_fw-la interiacentes_fw-la nullum_fw-la instituisse_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la nisi_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la venerabilis_fw-la apostolus_fw-la petrus_n aut_fw-la eius_fw-la successores_fw-la constituerunt_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la aut_fw-la legant_fw-la si_fw-la in_o istis_fw-la provincijs_fw-la alius_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la invenitur_fw-la aut_fw-la legitur_fw-la docuisse_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la legunt_fw-la quia_fw-la nusquam_fw-la invenitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n a_o loud_a and_o large_a lie_n for_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o be_v not_o ordain_v nor_o send_v by_o peter_n teach_v at_o rome_n and_o other_o place_n in_o italy_n freculphus_n write_v that_o philip_n the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o france_n the_o french_a acknowledge_v dionyse_n of_o ariopaguse_n who_o paul_n convert_v to_o be_v their_o apostle_n and_o first_o teacher_n jereney_n join_v paul_n with_o peter_n in_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o old_a record_n of_o our_o church_n it_o be_v report_v that_o joseph_n of_o arimathia_n first_o plant_v the_o gospel_n in_o britain_n saint_n augustine_n show_v that_o the_o gospel_n come_v into_o africa_n from_o other_o country_n then_o from_o rome_n for_o he_o distinguish_v rome_n from_o those_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o gospel_n first_o pass_v into_o africa_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n of_o his_o epist_n 162._o ad_fw-la glorium_fw-la eleusium_fw-la et_fw-la alios_fw-la cum_fw-la se_fw-la videret_fw-la &_o romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la semper_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la viguit_fw-la principatus_fw-la &_o caeteris_fw-la terris_fw-la unde_fw-la evangelium_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsam_fw-la aphricam_fw-la venit_fw-la per._n communicatorias_fw-la litteras_fw-la esse_fw-la coniunctum_fw-la final_o so_o loud_o be_v the_o lie_n that_o the_o gloss_n be_v constrain_v to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n alius_fw-la do_v signify_v contrarius_fw-la which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o innocentius_n his_o purpose_n for_o if_o his_o argument_n stand_v upon_o this_o point_n that_o therefore_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o province_n mention_v be_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n because_o she_o be_v their_o founder_n then_o if_o other_o not_o contrary_a to_o peter_n do_v find_v those_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o same_o be_v not_o to_o harken_v to_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o their_o
fall_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n ibidem_fw-la or_o as_o bellarmine_n say_v power_n to_o reconcile_v man_n to_o god_n otherwise_o then_o by_o baptism_n he_o charge_v caluin_n with_o this_o heresy_n as_o if_o caluin_n do_v deny_v reconciliation_n to_o repentant_a sinner_n or_o have_v say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o reconcile_v such_o as_o be_v fall_v as_o not_o this_o therefore_o gross_a impudence_n to_o lie_v so_o manifest_o but_o say_v he_o caluin_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o sacrament_n of_o repentance_n beside_o baptism_n as_o if_o he_o that_o deny_v this_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o reconcile_v sinner_n to_o god_n this_o certes_o be_v not_o only_a untruth_n but_o want_v also_o of_o all_o understanding_n and_o modesty_n falsification_n 20_o he_o do_v impudent_o affirm_v that_o luther_n and_o caluin_n deny_v freewill_n do_v fall_n into_o the_o heresy_n of_o manicheisme_n manichaeorum_fw-la est_fw-la inquit_fw-la hieronymus_n say_v bellarmine_n ibidem_fw-la hominum_fw-la damnare_fw-la naturam_fw-la &_o liberum_fw-la auferre_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la &_o augustinus_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 46._o peccatorum_fw-la originem_fw-la inquit_fw-la non_fw-la tribuunt_fw-la manichaei_n libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la idem_fw-la apertè_fw-la sectarij_fw-la omnes_fw-la now_o by_o sectary_n he_o understand_v all_o that_o profess_v the_o truth_n afterward_o he_o do_v special_o name_n luther_n and_o caluin_n but_o if_o he_o have_v any_o shame_n he_o will_v not_o have_v say_v that_o either_o luther_n or_o caluin_n do_v condemn_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n as_o the_o manicheye_n do_v or_o teach_v that_o man_n do_v sin_n necessary_o and_o not_o by_o his_o fréewill_n and_o albeit_o they_o deny_v the_o force_n of_o man_n will_n which_o be_v call_v common_o liberum_fw-la arbitrium_fw-la to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o understand_v the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o to_o perform_v the_o same_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o they_o savour_v of_o manicheisme_n but_o how_o the_o papist_n savour_v of_o this_o heresy_n we_o have_v show_v heretofore_o falsification_n 21_o ho●_n tamen_fw-la est_fw-la magis_fw-la impius_fw-la caluinus_fw-la manichaeo_n quod_fw-la manichaeus_n deo_fw-la malo_fw-la tribuat_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la originem_fw-la caluinus_fw-la deo_fw-la bono_fw-mi herein_o say_v bellarmine_n ibidem_fw-la do_v caluin_n show_v himself_o more_o wicked_a than_o the_o manichey_n because_o he_o attribute_v unto_o a_o evil_a god_n the_o beginning_n and_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o caluin_n to_o a_o good_a god_n but_o if_o he_o pass_v not_o the_o manicheye_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n in_o impudent_a lie_v he_o will_v not_o have_v thus_o false_o affirm_v this_o of_o caluin_n who_o in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o institution_n chap._n 18._o do_v express_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o all_o place_n do_v detest_v this_o opinion_n why_o then_o do_v not_o bellarmine_n allege_v his_o word_n if_o he_o have_v say_v any_o such_o matter_n in_o the_o place_n quote_v certes_o he_o teach_v the_o contrary_a of_o that_o which_o bellarmine_n affirm_v and_o bellow_v out_o against_o he_o falsification_n 22_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a also_o to_o affirm_v that_o all_o of_o we_o teach_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v be_v lose_v now_o this_o many_o year_n ibidem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la visibilem_fw-la à_fw-la multis_fw-la seculis_fw-la perijsse_fw-la say_v he_o &_o nunc_fw-la solum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o septentrionalibus_fw-la partibus_fw-la ubi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sunt_fw-la docent_fw-la omnes_fw-la praecipuê_fw-la caluinus_fw-la lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o §_o 2._o but_o he_o do_v belie_v caluin_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o we_o believe_v that_o in_o italy_n there_o be_v a_o visible_a church_n now_o albeit_o the_o pope_n see_v it_o not_o and_o that_o the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n consist_v not_o of_o spirit_n but_o of_o man_n visible_a albeit_o every_o one_o do_v not_o know_v they_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n at_o any_o time_n shall_v fail_v or_o have_v fail_v nor_o be_v this_o lie_a cardinal_n able_a to_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o our_o writing_n falsification_n 23_o of_o luther_n melancthon_n and_o caluin_n he_o affirm_v that_o they_o can_v deny_v ibidem_fw-la but_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o arianisme_n be_v sow_v in_o their_o writing_n which_o be_v a_o lie_n most_o odious_a and_o malicious_a for_o all_o the_o point_n of_o arianisme_n they_o not_o only_o detest_v but_o have_v learned_o refute_v and_o those_o proof_n that_o bellarmine_n bring_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr christo_fw-la be_v nothing_o but_o rail_v term_n and_o proof_n of_o his_o own_o malice_n falsification_n 24_o he_o say_v jovinian_a teach_v that_o a_o man_n after_o baptism_n can_v not_o sin_n ibidem_fw-la especial_o if_o he_o be_v true_o baptize_v and_o the_o same_o error_n he_o do_v impute_v to_o caluin_n but_o he_o lie_v both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o for_o neither_o do_v jovinian_a teach_v so_o nor_o caluin_n though_o by_o his_o lie_a report_n he_o do_v endeavour_n to_o conjoin_v they_o in_o one_o opinion_n falsification_n 25_o hierome_n do_v impute_v these_o heresy_n to_o vigilantius_n first_o that_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v unclean_a and_o to_o be_v throw_v out_o next_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n be_v not_o hear_v and_o last_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v marry_v but_o if_o bellarmine_n do_v say_v that_o in_o these_o three_o point_n we_o agree_v with_o vigilantius_n ibidem_fw-la as_o he_o do_v then_o do_v he_o make_v a_o thréefold_a lie_n for_o neither_o do_v we_o allow_v those_o that_o will_v have_v man_n body_n throw_v out_o to_o the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n and_o fowl_n of_o the_o air_n or_o otherwise_o use_v the_o body_n of_o holy_a man_n depart_v this_o life_n unreverent_o nor_o do_v we_o doubt_v but_o that_o god_n do_v hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a nor_o do_v we_o think_v any_o man_n be_v to_o be_v constrain_v either_o to_o marry_v or_o not_o to_o marry_v will_v they_o bellarmine_n show_v more_o plain_a and_o true_a deal_n in_o his_o disputation_n his_o reader_n will_v better_v like_a of_o he_o and_o his_o cause_n falsification_n 26_o of_o pelagius_n he_o affirm_v that_o he_o teach_v that_o righteousness_n be_v lose_v by_o every_o little_a sin_n ibidem_fw-la and_o that_o therefore_o every_o sin_n be_v mortal_a and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la pelagianos_fw-la but_o neither_o be_v this_o the_o error_n of_o pelagius_n who_o rather_o as_o the_o papist_n suppose_v &_o teach_v hold_v that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n may_v be_v without_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n nor_o do_v hierome_n affirm_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o pelagius_n falsification_n 27_o of_o zuinglius_fw-la he_o report_v that_o he_o do_v simple_o deny_v original_a sin_n to_o be_v in_o every_o man_n he_o say_v also_o ibidem_fw-la that_o caluin_n and_o bucer_n deny_v original_a sin_n to_o be_v in_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a matter_n utter_o false_a and_o which_o by_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o their_o writing_n be_v refute_v neither_o do_v it_o follow_v albeit_o the_o child_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v holy_a that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o bear_v in_o original_a sin_n for_o this_o holiness_n they_o do_v not_o otherwise_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o if_o it_o be_v pelagianisme_n to_o teach_v that_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o in_o all_o man_n then_o be_v the_o papist_n pelagian_n by_o bellarmine_n confession_n which_o exempt_v the_o bless_a virgin_n from_o this_o sin_n falsification_n 28_o xenaias_n persa_fw-la primus_fw-la palam_fw-la asseruit_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n christi_n &_o sanctorum_fw-la imagine_v non_fw-la esse_fw-la venerandas_fw-la testis_fw-la nicephorus_n lib._n 16._o c._n 27._o but_o this_o lie_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n by_o s._n augustine_n that_o condemn_v marcellina_n for_o worship_v and_o burn_a incense_n to_o the_o image_n of_o jesu_n &_o paul_n by_o epiphanius_n and_o other_o father_n which_o i_o have_v cite_v as_o witness_n against_o the_o idolatry_n of_o papist_n in_o my_o former_a challenge_n he_o do_v also_o falsify_v nicephorus_n in_o add_v these_o word_n primus_fw-la palam_fw-la unto_o he_o falsification_n 29_o in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n de_fw-la notis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la he_o tell_v we_o how_o dominick_n raise_v three_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n and_o that_o he_o and_o francis_n do_v many_o miracle_n as_o they_o be_v record_n do_v in_o the_o discourse_n of_o their_o life_n he_o say_v also_o that_o francis_n de_fw-fr paula_n do_v great_a miracle_n and_o that_o xavy_a a_o jebusite_n
do_v cure_v deaf_a and_o dumb_a man_n and_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n and_o restore_v one_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n but_o all_o these_o report_n of_o miracle_n be_v nothing_o but_o miraculous_a lie_n for_o ignatius_n do_v no_o miracle_n how_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o xavier_n shall_v do_v so_o many_o falsification_n 30_o in_o the_o 17._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o tell_v how_o luther_n die_v sudden_o that_o oecolampadius_n be_v find_v dead_a in_o his_o bed_n lie_v down_o in_o good_a health_n that_o carolstadius_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o devil_n that_o caluin_n die_v eat_v of_o worm_n as_o do_v antiochus_n and_o herod_n and_o other_o lie_v devise_v by_o man_n hire_v to_o rail_v upon_o honest_a man_n and_o refute_v by_o the_o history_n of_o their_o life_n and_o death_n and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o that_o be_v present_a at_o their_o end_n falsification_n 31_o in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr eucharistia_fw-la c._n 6._o he_o have_v these_o word_n irenaeus_n probat_fw-la christum_fw-la esse_fw-la creatorem_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la panis_fw-la fit_a corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la per_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la but_o irenaeus_n have_v no_o such_o matter_n nay_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v use_v any_o such_o argument_n then_o must_v it_o follow_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v create_v as_o oft_o as_o mass_n be_v say_v furthermore_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o place_n of_o irenaeus_n lib._n 4._o contr_n haeres_fw-la c._n 34._o that_o he_o dispute_v not_o against_o those_o that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n but_o which_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o that_o he_o proove_v not_o as_o say_v bellarmine_n because_o by_o consecration_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v christ_n body_n but_o because_o heretic_n offer_v to_o god_n bread_n which_o by_o consecration_n be_v make_v christ_n body_n and_o because_o this_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v ungrateful_a unless_o it_o have_v consist_v of_o god_n creature_n final_o because_o it_o be_v long_o to_o set_v down_o the_o particular_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o lie_n utter_v by_o bellarmine_n this_o i_o do_v give_v the_o reader_n to_o understand_v in_o general_a that_o almost_o all_o his_o report_n of_o his_o lie_a legend_n unwritten_a tradition_n feign_a miracle_n new_o devise_v prophecy_n and_o of_o the_o father_n testimony_n concern_v the_o special_a point_n of_o the_o late_a romish_a religion_n establish_v in_o trent_n be_v either_o plain_a lie_n or_o untrue_o let_v down_o by_o he_o and_o that_o shall_v every_o man_n perceive_v that_o list_v to_o read_v my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la papistica_fw-la de_fw-la pontifice_fw-la rom._n de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la de_fw-la concilijs_fw-la de_fw-la monachis_fw-la and_o other_o set_v out_o against_o he_o especial_o if_o he_o listen_v diligent_o to_o compare_v the_o father_n writing_n with_o that_o poison_n which_o he_o like_v a_o spider_n have_v suck_v out_o of_o they_o chap._n viii_o a_o catalogue_n of_o certain_a lie_n and_o falsification_n of_o caesar_n baronius_n take_v out_o of_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o annales_n now_o lest_o bellarmine_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v in_o lie_v and_o forge_v singular_a i_o will_v adjoine_v unto_o he_o his_o fellow_n caesar_n baronius_n a_o cardinal_a forger_n and_o liar_n and_o one_o of_o all_o the_o author_n that_o ever_o i_o read_v that_o most_o impudent_o abuse_v and_o detort_v scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o serve_v his_o own_o humour_n falsification_n 1_o in_o the_o front_n of_o his_o book_n have_v place_v the_o image_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o form_n of_o a_o woman_n with_o a_o heavy_a wooden_a cross_n on_o her_o shoulder_n and_o the_o triple_a crown_n upon_o her_o left_a hand_n with_o two_o great_a key_n of_o the_o pope_n cellar_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v hang_v down_o under_o it_o and_o on_o the_o one_o side_n place_v this_o word_n vicit_fw-la haereses_fw-la and_o on_o the_o other_o subegit_fw-la gentes_fw-la he_o do_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o he_o mean_v to_o tell_v little_a truth_n in_o his_o book_n that_o tell_v so_o many_o lie_v in_o the_o first_o front_n and_o face_n of_o it_o for_o first_o it_o be_v most_o untrue_a that_o this_o romish_a church_n that_o be_v now_o possess_v of_o the_o triple_a crown_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o pope_n he_o claim_v a_o power_n above_o all_o emperor_n and_o live_v in_o all_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n and_o though_o he_o carry_v with_o he_o headlong_o into_o hell_n great_a multitude_n of_o soul_n yet_o may_v no_o man_n say_v to_o he_o domine_fw-la cur_n ita_fw-la facis_fw-la his_o cardinal_n also_o and_o other_o adherent_n live_v like_a prince_n without_o all_o fear_n and_o danger_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o regard_n they_o fear_v their_o paunch_n final_o all_o these_o persecute_v other_o and_o be_v not_o persecute_v themselves_o falsification_n 2_o second_o he_o lie_v impudent_o where_o he_o signify_v that_o christ_n give_v the_o key_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o his_o adherent_n for_o he_o give_v they_o to_o peter_n &_o to_o such_o as_o shall_v succeed_v he_o in_o feed_n christ_n lamb_n and_o that_o by_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o rule_v the_o church_n according_a to_o instruction_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n and_o now_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n write_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v now_o become_v a_o earthly_a potentate_n he_o feed_v not_o but_o rather_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o christ_n lamb_n his_o follower_n have_v adulterate_v the_o faith_n and_o change_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n sacrament_n and_o now_o do_v rather_o handle_v clavas_fw-la quam_fw-la clave_n that_o be_v rather_o club_n than_o key_n murder_v as_o many_o as_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o mass_n priest_n with_o their_o counterfect_a key_n to_o creep_v into_o the_o secret_n both_o of_o their_o conscience_n and_o their_o worldly_a estate_n falsification_n 3_o false_a it_o be_v also_o that_o this_o latter_a romish_a church_n have_v subdue_v heresy_n be_v itself_o overcome_v and_o overgrow_v with_o heresy_n and_o be_v like_a to_o a_o large_a field_n overcomme_v with_o weed_n and_o this_o i_o have_v show_v at_o large_a in_o my_o former_a challenge_n in_o the_o chapter_n of_o romish_a heresy_n falsification_n 4_o neither_o can_v baronius_n show_v in_o all_o his_o voluminous_a legend_n that_o the_o true_a church_n in_o time_n paste_n do_v worship_v the_o wooden_a cross_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o baronius_n and_o other_o do_v if_o then_o he_o by_o his_o wooman_n represent_v the_o true_a church_n he_o lie_v if_o he_o re-represent_a the_o romish_a church_n and_o the_o purple_a hore_n apocalypse_v 17._o he_o say_v true_o for_o with_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o false_a doctrine_n she_o be_v much_o oppress_v and_o grevous_o burden_v yet_o that_o be_v nothing_o to_o this_o purpose_n falsification_n 5_o furthermore_n all_o history_n show_v that_o sense_n the_o pope_n begin_v to_o wear_v the_o triple_a crown_n and_o to_o show_v himself_o in_o that_o height_n of_o pride_n which_o baronius_n represent_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o figure_n the_o saracene_n turk_n &_o gentile_n have_v prevail_v against_o the_o pope_n &_o his_o follower_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o diverse_a disastrous_a attempt_n make_v against_o they_o for_o the_o regayn_n of_o the_o land_n of_o palestine_n common_o call_v the_o holy_a land_n baronius_n therefore_o plain_o cog_v where_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o the_o pope_n have_v prevail_v against_o the_o gentile_n for_o all_o the_o victory_n they_o have_v get_v have_v rather_o be_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o christian_n prince_n from_o who_o they_o have_v take_v rone_n italy_n &_o other_o territory_n they_o of_o turk_n and_o heathen_a who_o by_o the_o pope_n false_a doctrine_n and_o turbulent_a government_n have_v subdue_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_n world_n and_o yet_o be_v suffer_v for_o their_o idolatry_n and_o heresy_n to_o prevail_v against_o papist_n falsification_n 6_o he_o do_v also_o paint_v the_o holy_a ghost_n hover_v over_o the_o pope_n triple_a crown_n &_o the_o bless_a virgin_n with_o her_o son_n in_o her_o lap_n as_o govern_v the_o world_n and_o peter_n and_o paul_n support_v the_o worship_n of_o our_o lady_n which_o do_v all_o contain_v notorious_a lie_n for_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o popish_a triple_a crown_n or_o that_o these_o man_n be_v inspire_v with_o god_n spirit_n which_o leave_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n seek_v for_o triple_a crown_n &_o earthly_a kingdom_n second_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o teach_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n
great_a ostentation_n now_o to_o prove_v this_o to_o be_v true_a baronius_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o test_v a_o great_a lie_n affirm_v that_o gregorius_n thaumaturgus_n do_v remove_v not_o a_o house_n but_o a_o mountain_n which_o if_o he_o can_v do_v it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o he_o will_v remove_v the_o 7._o hill_n of_o rome_n together_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o lie_a cardinal_n and_o place_v they_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o mount_n tabor_n for_o whence_o baronius_n believe_v that_o our_o lady_n house_n do_v fly_v over_o the_o sea_n into_o dalmatia_n first_o and_o then_o into_o italy_n falsification_n 36_o of_o augustus_n he_o say_v ibidem_fw-la 97_o that_o he_o make_v law_n against_o such_o as_o live_v single_a and_o yet_o honour_v those_o that_o keep_v themselves_o continual_o true_a virgin_n which_o contain_v a_o notorious_a contradiction_n be●…de_v that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o prove_v vow_n of_o virginity_n from_o heathen_a emperor_n &_o very_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o he_o allow_v not_o fictum_fw-la caelibatum_fw-la nor_o any_o but_o those_o that_o indeed_o be_v true_a virgin_n of_o which_o he_o shall_v find_v very_o few_o among_o his_o fellow_n cardinal_n and_o not_o many_o among_o priest_n monk_n friar_n nun_n falsification_n 37_o where_o pilot_n as_o john_n chap._n 19_o say_v write_v the_o title_n over_o the_o cross_n in_o hebrew_n ibidem_fw-la pag._n 103._o greek_a and_o latin_a letter_n and_o as_o luke_n testify_v chap._n 23._o in_o hebrew_n latin_a and_o greek_a baronius_n suppose_v that_o the_o order_n be_v change_v and_o that_o the_o latin_a inscription_n ought_v to_o be_v first_o but_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o to_o contradict_v the_o evangeliste_n and_o to_o respect_v neither_o the_o apostle_n nor_o their_o writing_n so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v win_v any_o pre-eminence_n above_o other_o church_n he_o allege_v i_o confess_v the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la michaelem_fw-la but_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o blasphemy_n to_o believe_v that_o nicholas_n know_v those_o matter_n better_o and_o do_v report_v they_o more_o true_o than_o the_o evangelist_n beside_o that_o it_o may_v well_o be_v doubt_v whether_o nicholas_n write_v that_o epistle_n to_o michael_n or_o some_o other_o in_o his_o name_n that_o without_o all_o truth_n and_o modesty_n advance_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o romish_a see_v falsification_n 38_o where_o luke_o do_v express_o set_v down_o that_o john_n baptiste_n begin_v to_o preach_v pag._n 113._o when_o annas_n and_o caiphas_n be_v high_a preiste_n baronius_n say_v that_o only_a caiphas_n be_v high_a priest_n in_o the_o soccession_n of_o aaron_n and_o that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o hold_v for_o fear_n lest_o he_o shall_v overthrow_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n annas_n he_o say_v be_v chief_a priest_n as_o head_n of_o his_o rank_n and_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a head_n of_o the_o sanedrin_n but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o high_a priest_n why_o shall_v he_o be_v name_v before_o cayphas_n or_o why_o shall_v luke_n so_o call_v he_o if_o he_o may_v not_o be_v high_a priest_n as_o contrary_a to_o law_n he_o must_v understand_v that_o at_o this_o time_n neither_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n nor_o the_o order_n of_o succession_n be_v right_o observe_v falsification_n 39_o talk_v of_o saint_n john_n baptist_n he_o say_v he_o dwell_v in_o the_o wilderness_n ibidem_fw-la p._n 114._o and_o keep_v in_o a_o den_n call_v sapsas_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v visit_v he_o oftentimes_o in_o this_o den_n and_o this_o he_o prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o sophronius_n and_o one_o john_n a_o monk_n to_o who_o saint_n john_n appear_v as_o he_o beléeve_v in_o this_o hole_n and_o tell_v he_o all_o this_o story_n matter_n fabulous_a and_o ridiculous_a for_o who_o will_v grant_v that_o saint_n john_n baptist_n who_o soul_n be_v with_o god_n kéept_v in_o this_o den_n it_o be_v as_o like_v that_o he_o dwell_v there_o be_v dead_a as_o be_v alive_a yet_o this_o be_v also_o a_o romish_a tradition_n but_o whether_o locust_n that_o s._n john_n baptist_n do_v eat_v be_v live_v creature_n or_o no_o as_o yet_o baronius_n have_v not_o find_v out_o any_o certain_a tradition_n isidorus_n of_o pelusium_n hold_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o gospel_n signify_v the_o top_n of_o herb_n and_o plant_n falsification_n 40_o pag._n 110_o he_o say_v that_o s._n john_n baptist_n do_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o monastical_a life_n and_o that_o all_o catholic_n confess_v it_o to_o be_v so_o a_o lie_n notorious_a as_o appear_v by_o my_o answer_n to_o bellarmine_n treatise_n de_fw-la monachis_fw-la furthermore_o this_o his_o assertion_n may_v be_v convince_v first_o for_o that_o john_n baptist_n neither_o make_v vow_n nor_o live_v after_o any_o certain_a rule_n nor_o forswear_v marriage_n second_o for_o that_o this_o manner_n of_o life_n be_v but_o for_o a_o time_n for_o after_o a_o while_n he_o leave_v his_o habitation_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o judaea_n and_o come_v to_o jordan_z and_o into_o city_n three_o john_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v commend_v as_o a_o singular_a prophet_n but_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v rather_o the_o forerunner_n &_o staf●…ers_n of_o antichrist_n then_o of_o christ_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n of_o they_o in_o scripture_n but_o in_o general_a term_n apocalyps_n 9_o where_o we_o read_v of_o locust_n issue_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o such_o like_a place_n prophet_n certes_o they_o be_v not_o unless_o we_o give_v the_o name_n of_o prophet_n to_o false_a teacher_n four_o if_o john_n seem_v in_o his_o manner_n of_o life_n to_o have_v give_v any_o example_n to_o eremites_n yet_o that_o serve_v other_o monk_n and_o friar_n nothing_o that_o live_v in_o most_o frequent_a city_n and_o be_v in_o continual_a action_n final_o albeit_o chrysostome_n and_o hierome_n say_v somewhat_o of_o john_n baptist_n as_o if_o he_o first_o have_v show_v a_o example_n of_o solitary_a life_n yet_o neither_o do_v that_o serve_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v a_o precedent_n to_o other_o monk_n nor_o do_v other_o father_n or_o catholic_a author_n affirm_v that_o he_o lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o monastical_a life_n i_o hope_v rob._n parson_n will_v not_o say_v that_o john_n baptist_n be_v like_o his_o father_n ignatius_n loyola_n that_o mad_a maranicall_a spaniard_n and_o swagger_a companion_n the_o first_o author_n founder_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o hispaniolized_a jesuite_n falsification_n 41_o pag._n 117._o he_o say_v christ_n be_v baptize_v the_o sixth_o of_o january_n and_o this_o he_o will_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o letter_n of_o eusebius_n ad_fw-la marinum_fw-la who_o fragment_n be_v in_o the_o edition_n of_o christopher_n after_o the_o history_n of_o euagrius_n as_o he_o write_v but_o see_v the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v conceal_v the_o exa●t_a day_n he_o show_v not_o himself_o wise_a curious_o to_o dispute_v of_o this_o point_n beside_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v we_o a_o favour_n to_o show_v who_o this_o christopher_n be_v that_o set_v out_o eusebius_n otherwise_o his_o follower_n will_v believe_v that_o he_o take_v christopher_n for_o christopherson_n final_o there_o be_v no_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o such_o vain_a fragment_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a writer_n in_o the_o history_n of_o eusebius_n we_o read_v not_o that_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o this_o counterfeit_a marinus_n so_o that_o this_o tradition_n seem_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o rot_a foundation_n falsification_n 42_o gregorius_n turonensis_n tell_v how_o leprosy_n be_v cure_v by_o wash_v in_o water_n where_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v baptize_v and_o baronius_n beléeve_v he_o say_v true_a but_o yet_o be_v this_o gregory_n no_o good_a witness_n in_o this_o case_n write_v nothing_o but_o by_o hearsay_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o holy_a scripture_n that_o baptism_n be_v ordain_v a_o sacrament_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o not_o that_o jordane_n be_v make_v a_o medicine_n to_o purge_v lepres_n falsification_n 43_o pag._n 119._o he_o suppose_v that_o he_o have_v sound_o confute_v those_o that_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v to_o peter_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petra_n sed_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n but_o either_o must_v he_o lie_v or_o must_v he_o charge_v the_o evangelist_n matthew_n with_o untruth_n which_o be_v a_o point_n blasphemous_a he_o say_v also_o that_o such_o as_o translate_v the_o word_n cephas_n and_o say_v it_o do_v signify_v a_o head_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v but_o if_o he_o have_v have_v either_o head_n or_o brain_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o relate_v history_n and_o thing_n do_v in_o ancient_a time_n he_o will_v have_v omit_v all_o curious_a disputation_n for_o the_o
i_o have_v show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o new_a and_o false_a but_o also_o superstitious_a and_o heretical_a again_o if_o parson_n can_v say_v nothing_o why_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o england_n be_v not_o catholic_a and_o apostolical_a then_o all_o his_o reason_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o all_o his_o pretence_n of_o fear_n of_o infection_n of_o scandal_n of_o schism_n of_o cast_v away_o the_o mark_n of_o distinction_n of_o participation_n with_o we_o of_o dissimulation_n of_o naughty_a service_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o popish_a religion_n may_v be_v retort_v against_o himself_o and_o his_o client_n for_o neither_o be_v christian_n to_o suffer_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o idolatrous_a mass_n nor_o the_o faction_n and_o pack_v of_o wicked_a dissemble_a papist_n nor_o may_v any_o magistrate_n or_o other_o good_a christian_n with_o good_a conscience_n suffer_v god_n true_a religion_n by_o schismatickes_n and_o heretic_n to_o be_v scorn_v and_o these_o reason_n be_v so_o effectual_a that_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o those_o that_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o these_o cause_n will_v both_o take_v up_o such_o owlet_n and_o deliver_v christian_a religion_n from_o contempt_n of_o such_o impostor_n and_o atheist_n second_o purpose_v and_o promise_v three_o thing_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v a_o demonstration_n of_o reason_n why_o papist_n shall_v not_o go_v to_o the_o church_n the_o next_o contain_v a_o declaration_n of_o mean_n how_o papist_n shall_v remedy_v or_o ease_v themselves_o of_o their_o affliction_n the_o three_o be_v a_o instruction_n how_o with_o patience_n to_o endure_v affliction_n the_o first_o he_o handle_v most_o lewd_o and_o loose_o the_o other_o two_o part_n he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v out_o abuse_v both_o his_o friend_n and_o his_o adversary_n with_o his_o false_a promise_n further_o it_o may_v be_v that_o his_o remedy_n be_v nothing_o but_o practice_n of_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n and_o that_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o exhort_v man_n to_o patience_n and_o that_o therefore_o he_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o these_o two_o point_n but_o why_o then_o do_v he_o promise_v do_v he_o promise_v that_o which_o he_o purpose_v not_o to_o perform_v and_o do_v he_o mean_v to_o keep_v no_o touch_n in_o any_o thing_n his_o directory_n also_o be_v a_o most_o idle_a and_o vain_a discourse_n it_o shall_v consist_v of_o three_o part_n whereof_o the_o first_o as_o he_o say_v appertain_v to_o resolution_n the_o second_o treat_v of_o entrance_n the_o three_o of_o perseverance_n but_o as_o his_o fashion_n be_v of_o three_o part_n promise_v he_o keep_v back_o two_o and_o perform_v the_o three_o most_o simple_o for_o first_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v concern_v resolution_n be_v very_o impertinent_a for_o it_o be_v a_o very_a evil_a sign_n of_o resolution_n in_o matter_n of_o christian_n religion_n for_o a_o man_n to_o dispute_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o no_o and_o whether_o christian_n religion_n be_v true_a or_o no_o as_o parson_n do_v again_o despair_n of_o god_n mercy_n temptation_n fear_v of_o persecution_n and_o such_o like_a impediment_n as_o parson_n allege_v do_v rather_o hinder_v a_o man_n to_o lead_v a_o christian_n life_n then_o help_v to_o resolve_v he_o to_o do_v it_o second_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v either_o steal_v out_o of_o gaspar_n loarti_fw-la or_o granatensis_n or_o stella_n or_o such_o like_a friar_n like_a and_o idle_a discourse_n three_o it_o argue_v that_o he_o have_v a_o bad_a conceit_n of_o popish_a cacolike_n in_o england_n for_o if_o he_o take_v they_o to_o be_v christian_n he_o will_v neither_o go_v about_o to_o teach_v they_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n nor_o that_o christian_n religion_n be_v true_a nor_o that_o there_o be_v reward_n offer_v to_o those_o that_o do_v well_o both_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o in_o this_o life_n and_o punishment_n likewise_o for_o evil_a doer_n both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o after_o this_o life_n for_o every_o child_n among_o christian_n know_v all_o this_o without_o his_o teach_n four_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o this_o directory_n have_v make_v any_o one_o christian_n or_o direct_v he_o the_o way_n to_o life_n but_o i_o do_v hear_v many_o complain_v that_o diverse_a simple_a young_a man_n have_v be_v direct_v by_o he_o to_o the_o gallows_n five_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o this_o book_n have_v wrought_v little_a good_a effect_n in_o parson_n himself_o that_o have_v so_o long_o stand_v upon_o resolution_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o entrance_n of_o religion_n sixthly_a as_o law_n be_v make_v to_o restrain_v common_a abuse_n so_o likewise_o divine_v shall_v discourse_v of_o such_o matter_n as_o may_v make_v most_o for_o reformation_n of_o christian_n man_n manner_n this_o discourse_n therefore_o of_o his_o wherein_o he_o endevour_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o there_o be_v one_o true_a religion_n that_o there_o be_v a_o heaven_n and_o a_o hell_n among_o christian_n already_o well_o persuade_v be_v impertinent_a and_o will_v better_o have_v be_v bestow_v upon_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n that_o scarce_o believe_v in_o god_n or_o know_v any_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o christian_n religion_n furthermore_o entreat_v of_o resolution_n which_o as_o himself_o declare_v go_v before_o entrance_n and_o perseverance_n yet_o do_v he_o very_o wise_o divide_v the_o treatise_n of_o resolution_n into_o speculation_n and_o practice_n the_o first_o part_n say_v he_o shall_v contain_v matter_n of_o discourse_n speculation_n consideration_n the_o second_o shall_v handle_v thing_n appertain_v to_o exercise_n use_n and_o practice_v as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v practice_v that_o be_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n or_o as_o if_o resolution_n be_v not_o far_o different_a from_o practice_n final_o the_o book_n be_v so_o full_o fraught_v with_o idle_a discourse_n and_o the_o principal_a point_n so_o weak_o prove_v that_o it_o will_v rather_o make_v christian_n to_o doubt_n of_o religion_n than_o atheist_n to_o believe_v it_o do_v also_o contain_v so_o much_o poison_n that_o no_o physic_n can_v make_v it_o wholesome_a i_o will_v therefore_o advise_v all_o christian_n to_o beware_v of_o his_o book_n of_o resolution_n by_o he_o entitle_v a_o directory_n contain_v little_a truth_n but_o much_o superstition_n and_o heretical_a poison_n the_o same_o be_v also_o a_o disgrace_n to_o all_o papist_n who_o he_o presume_v as_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v resolve_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o that_o christian_n religion_n be_v true_a to_o christian_n it_o can_v yield_v no_o instruction_n be_v a_o pack_n of_o steal_v and_o bad_a stuff_n evil_o truss_v together_o neither_o be_v the_o same_o good_a although_o it_o have_v be_v purge_v the_o whole_a substance_n be_v lewd_a and_o full_a of_o poison_n much_o i_o wonder_v that_o any_o christian_n will_v set_v it_o forth_o in_o this_o church_n and_o more_o that_o christian_n shall_v believe_v that_o any_o good_a be_v like_a to_o come_v of_o such_o a_o wicked_a writing_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o such_o as_o be_v in_o authority_n will_v remove_v both_o that_o and_o other_o such_o venomous_a treatise_n out_o of_o all_o true_a christian_a man_n hand_n be_v rather_o fit_v for_o italian_a atheist_n than_o the_o english_a nation_n to_o leave_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o treachery_n heresy_n and_o other_o fault_n which_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v correct_v by_o the_o public_a executioner_n then_o note_v by_o the_o stile_n of_o a_o writer_n i_o will_v only_o in_o this_o discourse_n set_v down_o certain_a notorious_a falsification_n commit_v by_o he_o in_o sundry_a pamphlet_n set_v out_o under_o diverse_a counterfect_a name_n and_o give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o his_o unsavoury_a lie_n of_o which_o in_o parson_n write_n there_o be_v great_a store_n and_o this_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o in_o his_o relation_n send_v we_o from_o rone_n concern_v the_o conference_n some_o two_o year_n ago_o pass_v in_o france_n between_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr plessis_fw-la and_o the_o pretend_a bishop_n of_o eureux_fw-fr he_o seem_v earnest_o to_o desire_v a_o trial_n concern_v these_o point_n the_o man_n also_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o reason_n of_o refusal_n of_o go_v to_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o john_n houlet_n desire_v that_o some_o indifferent_a trial_n may_v be_v have_v either_o by_o disputation_n or_o otherwise_o wherein_o i_o desire_v he_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v falsification_n 1_o first_o then_o i_o challenge_v the_o man_n as_o a_o notorious_a falsificator_n in_o that_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o his_o own_o book_n concern_v title_n under_o the_o name_n of_o another_o priest_n call_v dolman_n who_o be_v never_o acquant_v with_o the_o matter_n wherein_o albeit_o he_o have_v commit_v far_o more_o heinous_a fault_n than_o
weston_n jesuit_n in_o wisbich_n teach_v that_o whore_n be_v in_o rome_n with_o as_o good_a right_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o consort_n do_v at_o wisbich_n some_o three_o or_o four_o year_n ago_o affirm_v that_o whore_n be_v in_o rome_n cum_fw-la approbatione_fw-la and_o to_o truss_v all_o short_a with_o as_o good_a right_n as_o the_o pope_n and_o if_o he_o dare_v or_o hope_v to_o win_v advantage_n by_o it_o let_v he_o compare_v the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n and_o romish_a clergy_n and_o people_n with_o such_o as_o true_o profess_v our_o religion_n and_o examine_v the_o honesty_n of_o both_o and_o if_o not_o let_v he_o leave_v his_o lie_v and_o rail_v upon_o honest_a man_n falsification_n 9_o pag._n 11._o chap._n 2._o for_o spittle_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n we_o have_v the_o warrant_n of_o s._n ambrose_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr sacrament_n c._n 1._o but_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v we_o have_v here_o a_o notorious_a lie_n deliver_v by_o he_o for_o s._n ambrose_n in_o that_o place_n have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o spittle_n much_o less_o of_o spittle_n in_o baptism_n for_o which_o he_o be_v allege_v i_o wonder_v then_o if_o philip_n woodward_n have_v make_v up_o these_o wooden_a animadversion_n that_o the_o other_o mass_n priest_n do_v not_o spit_v in_o his_o face_n and_o defy_v he_o and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o he_o suppose_v every_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n or_o the_o author_n of_o that_o counterfeit_a treatise_n to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a warrant_n who_o the_o papist_n in_o diverse_a point_n regard_v not_o as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o treatise_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la now_o publish_v against_o bellarmine_n falsification_n 10_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n pag._n 12._o he_o say_v that_o for_o ceremony_n use_v by_o the_o romanist_n in_o baptism_n viz._n for_o exorcism_n blowing_n salt_n spittle_n hallow_a water_n anointing_n light_n and_o other_o for_o of_o these_o he_o speak_v he_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n whatsoever_o i_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n but_o can_v any_o man_n believe_v he_o on_o his_o bare_a word_n sure_o no._n for_o take_v on_o he_o to_o prove_v these_o ceremony_n like_o a_o simple_a idiot_n he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o bring_v any_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n for_o light_n holy_a water_n and_o grease_v in_o baptism_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o he_o bring_v be_v far_o short_a of_o his_o purpose_n so_o that_o to_o prove_v owlyglasse_n a_o lie_a companion_n i_o need_v no_o testimony_n but_o owlyglasse_n himself_o his_o own_o loose_a dispute_n do_v prove_v ph._n woodward_n to_o be_v a_o wooden_a fellow_n falsification_n 11_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n pag._n 11._o he_o write_v that_o i_o utter_v a_o untruth_n so_o manifest_a that_o caluin_n do_v confess_v it_o and_o yet_o caluin_n be_v dead_a long_o before_o i_o write_v any_o thing_n beside_o that_o he_o do_v not_o confess_v that_o to_o be_v untruth_n which_o i_o affirm_v for_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o ceremony_n in_o question_n be_v practise_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o i_o deny_v but_o only_o affirm_v that_o he_o know_v how_o ancient_a they_o be_v which_o may_v be_v true_a albeit_o they_o be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o practise_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o by_o some_o few_o superstitious_a person_n final_o he_o be_v a_o simple_a fellow_n to_o tell_v we_o of_o caluin_n or_o to_o make_v he_o our_o judge_n albeit_o we_o reverence_v his_o memory_n as_o be_v a_o learned_a and_o godly_a man_n and_o a_o excellent_a instrument_n use_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o set_v forth_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n wicked_o suppress_v by_o antichrist_n falsification_n 12_o speak_v of_o our_o communion_n book_n in_o the_o same_o book_n say_v pag._n 13._o he_o lay_v man_n and_o woman_n be_v permit_v to_o minister_v baptism_n but_o no_o man_n do_v permit_v he_o thus_o to_o lie_v and_o to_o speak_v without_o book_n neither_o will_v he_o have_v take_v himself_o liberty_n in_o thing_n not_o permit_v unless_o the_o archpriest_n or_o some_o false_a jebusite_n have_v give_v he_o liberty_n to_o lie_v and_o speak_v untruth_n that_o he_o have_v malicious_o utter_v untruth_n the_o book_n will_v declare_v wherein_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n either_o of_o lie_v man_n or_o woman_n permit_v to_o minister_v baptism_n falsification_n 13_o where_o he_o say_v pag._n 15._o that_o epiphanius_n and_o hierome_n affirm_v that_o marry_v person_n use_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o holy_a order_n except_o they_o do_v promise_v perpetual_a continency_n from_o their_o wife_n he_o tell_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n for_o neither_o do_v epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 59_o nor_o hierome_n advers_o vigilantium_fw-la speak_v one_o word_n of_o promise_n or_o vow_v make_v in_o that_o case_n beside_o that_o if_o they_o shall_v make_v such_o a_o promise_n yet_o be_v that_o no_o warrant_n to_o permit_v man_n to_o leave_v their_o wife_n in_o that_o sort_n nor_o can_v man_n depart_v or_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n without_o their_o consent_n as_o the_o adversary_n know_v if_o he_o know_v any_o thing_n falsification_n 14_o he_o say_v pag._n 16._o that_o in_o marry_a couple_n disjoin_v the_o band_n of_o marriage_n continue_v still_o but_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 24._o c._n 6._o and_o other_o author_n in_o the_o challenge_n before_o allege_a will_v tell_v he_o that_o in_o marriage_n dissolve_v before_o consummation_n this_o his_o assertion_n be_v untrue_a falsification_n 15_o chap._n 2._o p._n 17._o most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o they_o say_v mass_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o soul_n depart_v say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o in_o this_o point_n not_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v forth_o one_o father_n that_o ever_o say_a mass_n or_o dirge_n for_o the_o dead_a he_o do_v after_o a_o close_a manner_n give_v himself_o the_o lie_n and_o to_o make_v his_o lie_a more_o manifest_a i_o have_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o exception_n take_v away_o all_o the_o colour_n that_o he_o with_o his_o little_a learning_n can_v set_v upon_o the_o matter_n if_o he_o rest_v not_o with_o his_o loss_n let_v he_o in_o his_o next_o return_n show_v where_o any_o ancient_a father_n say_v requiem_n aeternam_fw-la for_o the_o dead_a or_o pray_v thus_o absolve_v domine_fw-la animas_fw-la omnium_fw-la fidelium_fw-la defunctorum_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la vinculo_fw-la delictorum_fw-la and_o final_o let_v he_o prove_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n beléeve_v that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v real_o offer_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o the_o mass_n if_o he_o can_v not_o do_v this_o he_o talk_v idle_o of_o his_o mass_n and_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o mass_n priest_n rather_o in_o a_o foolish_a intention_n than_o in_o certain_a knowledge_n or_o true_a popish_a devotion_n falsification_n 16_o pag._n 21._o chap._n 2._o he_o deni_v that_o papist_n put_v any_o hope_n in_o image_n or_o that_o they_o worship_v they_o as_o the_o gentile_n do_v their_o god_n or_o that_o they_o offer_v their_o prayer_n or_o devotion_n unto_o they_o but_o he_o lie_v false_o as_o his_o own_o conscience_n may_v tell_v he_o if_o he_o have_v any_o conscience_n and_o be_v not_o as_o stupid_a as_o any_o stock_n or_o stone_n which_o he_o be_v wont_v to_o worship_n second_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n must_v needs_o convince_v he_o of_o lie_v for_o among_o the_o romanist_n simple_a people_n and_o priest_n also_o not_o unlike_a to_o heathen_a idolater_n fall_v down_o before_o stock_n and_o stone_n set_v up_o light_n before_o they_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o pray_v before_o they_o three_o their_o usual_a form_n of_o prayer_n do_v show_v that_o he_o have_v tell_v untruth_n and_o that_o lie_v be_v with_o he_o a_o usual_a form_n in_o their_o ritual_a book_n they_o say_v o_o crux_fw-la ave_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la and_o friar_n bartilmew_n of_o sienna_n that_o be_v now_o say_v to_o work_v miracle_n have_v these_o word_n for_o his_o devise_n christ_n and_o his_o cross_n and_o mary_n be_v my_o guide_n and_o keeper_n and_o to_o the_o portrait_n of_o our_o saviour_n face_n they_o say_v salve_n sancta_fw-la facies_fw-la four_o their_o common_a doctrine_n be_v that_o the_o image_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o worship_n that_o be_v due_a to_o the_o original_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v doubt_v whether_o the_o heathen_a be_v so_o gross_a idolater_n as_o to_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o their_o image_n final_o they_o go_v on_o pilgrimage_n to_o their_o image_n more_o than_o ever_o do_v the_o heathen_a and_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v more_o than_o the_o heathen_a idol_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o vow_v make_v to_o the_o lady_n of_o loreto_n and_o such_o other_o saint_n for_o never_o do_v the_o
heathen_a more_o superstitious_o worship_n diana_n at_o ephesus_n than_o the_o romanist_n worship_v the_o image_n of_o our_o lady_n at_o loreto_n falsification_n 17_o speak_v of_o fast_n in_o lent_n on_o ember_n day_n and_o on_o the_o vigiles_fw-la of_o saint_n he_o say_v that_o antiquity_n be_v plentiful_a viz._n of_o testimony_n in_o this_o case_n and_o yet_o the_o wooden_a fellow_n do_v not_o bring_v any_o one_o testimony_n for_o the_o fast_n upon_o vigiles_fw-la of_o saint_n nor_o can_v he_o prove_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n by_o any_o one_o testimony_n allege_v by_o he_o precise_o falsification_n 18_o pag._n 28._o chap._n 2._o he_o deni_v that_o papist_n hold_v that_o christian_a man_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n a_o impudent_a untruth_n and_o wherein_o he_o contradict_v himself_o for_o if_o christian_n can_v fulfil_v all_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o he_o go_v about_o with_o all_o his_o little_a skill_n to_o prove_v and_o that_o by_o diverse_a argument_n then_o do_v it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o they_o may_v live_v without_o all_o sin_n falsification_n 19_o pag._n 31._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o form_n of_o confirmation_n be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o apostle_n a_o lie_n of_o great_a length_n reach_v to_o the_o apostle_n time_n &_o thereof_o to_o convince_v he_o no_o man_n need_v to_o go_v far_o than_o his_o own_o confession_n who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o allege_v either_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o any_o ancient_a father_n for_o this_o form_n of_o confirmation_n signo_fw-la te_fw-la signo_fw-la crucis_fw-la &_o confirmo_fw-la te_fw-la chrismate_fw-la salutis_fw-la falsification_n 20_o in_o the_o same_o place_n very_o impudent_o he_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o form_n of_o consecration_n practise_v by_o the_o romanist_n have_v always_o be_v hold_v and_o will_v therefore_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v a_o constituion_n apostolical_a but_o his_o assertion_n be_v refute_v both_o by_o history_n and_o father_n and_o especial_o by_o his_o own_o silence_n that_o speak_v more_o in_o a_o line_n than_o he_o will_v prove_v all_o his_o life_n falsification_n 21_o pag._n 34._o he_o say_v papist_n grant_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n of_o redemption_n but_o doubt_v not_o to_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v many_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n but_o he_o lie_v in_o both_o these_o point_n for_o in_o the_o mass_n the_o priest_n be_v say_v in_o plain_a term_n to_o offer_v pro_fw-la redemptione_n animarum_fw-la and_o sure_a if_o they_o offer_v up_o christ_n jesus_n proper_o and_o real_o then_o be_v they_o mediator_n of_o redemption_n the_o second_o point_n i_o have_v declare_v to_o be_v a_o notorious_a lie_n in_o my_o former_a discourse_n falsification_n 22_o pag._n 43._o he_o hudle_v up_o diverse_a lie_n upon_o a_o heap_n first_o he_o say_v auricular_a confession_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n second_o that_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n man_n in_o mortal_a sin_n be_v bind_v to_o repair_v to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o auricular_a confession_n three_o that_o mortal_a sin_n be_v not_o remit_v without_o auricular_a confession_n the_o first_o lie_n be_v refute_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o neither_o form_n nor_o institution_n of_o auricular_a confession_n be_v to_o be_v find_v the_o second_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o book_n of_o god_n law_n wherein_o we_o find_v no_o colour_n of_o such_o a_o ordinance_n the_o three_o be_v manifest_v by_o diverse_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o declare_v galat._n 3_o that_o we_o receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n that_o act._n 15._o faith_n purify_v our_o heart_n that_o we_o be_v wash_v by_o christ_n his_o blood_n who_o we_o put_v on_o not_o by_o outward_a confession_n but_o by_o our_o faith_n and_o inward_a conversion_n to_o god_n furthermore_o all_o these_o lie_n may_v be_v refute_v also_o by_o the_o silence_n of_o oulyglasse_n that_o be_v not_o able_a to_o justify_v any_o one_o of_o his_o assertion_n by_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n beside_o that_o all_o papist_n hold_v that_o confession_n be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o their_o new_a law_n and_o not_o establish_v under_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n as_o oulyglasse_n will_v insinuate_v final_o the_o decretale_a of_o innocentius_n upon_o which_o auricular_a confession_n depend_v be_v long_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n be_v a_o plain_a conviction_n of_o oulyglass_n false_a deal_n for_o how_o can_v that_o be_v either_o institute_v by_o christ_n or_o authorize_v by_o the_o law_n or_o deem_v necessary_a that_o before_o innocent_a the_o three_o time_n be_v neither_o establish_v nor_o deem_v necessary_a falsification_n 23_o most_n impudent_o he_o affirm_v pag._n 49._o that_o saint_n james_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o extreme_a unction_n but_o that_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v a_o lie_n both_o for_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o sacrament_n there_o and_o for_o that_o sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v institute_v by_o man_n but_o by_o god_n final_o no_o ancient_a father_n do_v ever_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o popish_a extreme_a unction_n falsification_n 24_o pag._n 113._o he_o say_v that_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n concern_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o out_o of_o my_o word_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o after_o his_o wont_a fashion_n he_o have_v tell_v untruth_n the_o rest_n of_o his_o lie_n you_o shall_v find_v note_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o exception_n to_o my_o challenge_n if_o then_o he_o have_v begin_v to_o lie_v so_o fast_o what_o be_v we_o to_o look_v for_o if_o he_o continue_v his_o course_n of_o writing_n and_o if_o his_o client_n do_v commend_v he_o for_o these_o lie_n what_o will_v they_o if_o he_o procee_v on_o as_o he_o have_v begin_v ay_o for_o my_o part_n will_v give_v my_o voice_n to_o have_v he_o canonize_v for_o lie_v chap._n xiii_o corollary_n and_o conclusion_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o former_a challenge_n and_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o exception_n take_v to_o the_o same_o i_o need_v not_o as_o i_o suppose_v make_v any_o large_a discourse_n in_o draw_v out_o particular_a conclusion_n out_o of_o the_o former_a challenge_n and_o answer_v for_o he_o be_v very_o simple_a that_o do_v not_o perceive_v whereto_o they_o both_o do_v tend_v beside_o that_o i_o have_v heretofore_o touch_v some_o principal_a point_n which_o especial_o seem_v to_o deserve_v consideration_n but_o see_v robert_n parson_n in_o his_o relation_n send_v we_o from_o rome_n beside_o the_o report_n of_o matter_n then_o pass_v begin_v first_o to_o draw_v out_o certain_a idle_a observation_n and_o perceive_v well_o that_o his_o wooden_a scholar_n owlyglasse_n do_v second_v he_o and_o have_v likewise_o endeavour_v to_o make_v observation_n and_o to_o draw_v great_a conclusion_n out_o of_o his_o slender_a and_o misshape_a premise_n i_o have_v think_v it_o not_o amiss_o to_o encounter_v he_o although_o not_o in_o so_o weak_a manner_n with_o the_o very_a like_o course_n and_o for_o his_o observation_n to_o send_v he_o likewise_o other_o observation_n and_o conclusion_n be_v very_o loath_a to_o be_v behind_o he_o in_o any_o course_n that_o may_v serve_v either_o to_o manifest_v the_o truth_n or_o to_o correct_v the_o error_n and_o treachery_n of_o such_o lewd_a companion_n observation_n 1_o first_o then_o i_o do_v observe_v if_o the_o jesuite_n and_o their_o adherent_n be_v false_a prophet_n and_o false_a teacher_n that_o then_o they_o be_v most_o diligent_o to_o be_v seek_v out_o and_o punish_v the_o sequel_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o law_n of_o god_n deut._n 13._o moses_n speak_v of_o false_a prophet_n say_v propheta_fw-la ille_fw-la aut_fw-la fictor_fw-la somniorun_v interficietur_fw-la quia_fw-la locutus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la averteret_fw-la vos_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la deo_fw-la vestro_fw-la that_o be_v that_o prophet_n or_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n shall_v be_v slay_v because_o he_o have_v speak_v to_o disturne_v you_o from_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o false_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n be_v fit_o join_v with_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n for_o that_o he_o that_o teach_v doctrine_n not_o ground_v upon_o the_o infallable_n word_n of_o god_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o dreamer_n of_o dream_n christian_n king_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v nurse_n of_o god_n church_n and_o have_v the_o sword_n commit_v unto_o they_o not_o only_o to_o repress_v seditious_a person_n and_o wicked_a malefactor_n but_o also_o such_o idolatrous_a massepriest_n as_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o seek_v to_o disturne_v man_n from_o the_o truth_n by_o their_o false_a doctrine_n with_o prince_n also_o all_o true_a christian_n ought_v to_o concur_v in_o the_o detect_n of_o such_o wicked_a member_n if_o thy_o brother_n
suffer_v to_o raise_v against_o the_o law_n of_o england_n and_o this_o state_n as_o they_o have_v do_v in_o their_o rail_a libel_n entitle_v aduersus_fw-la persecutores_fw-la anglos_n andreas_n philopater_n sanders_n de_fw-la schismate_fw-la and_o diverse_a other_o of_o that_o nature_n or_o why_o shall_v any_o be_v suffer_v in_o corner_n to_o whisper_v against_o so_o lawful_a and_o godly_a proceed_n the_o papist_n will_v not_o yield_v to_o we_o sufficient_a safeconduct_n and_o liberty_n to_o dispute_v in_o milan_n paris_n collen_n and_o salamanca_n why_o then_o do_v they_o brag_v as_o if_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o dispute_v and_o try_v their_o cause_n in_o cambridge_n and_o oxford_n and_o what_o a_o ridiculous_a point_n be_v it_o to_o desire_v that_o for_o papist_n which_o themselves_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o we_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o book_n of_o we_o to_o be_v publish_v in_o rome_n or_o other_o place_n where_o popery_n be_v profess_v if_o they_o contain_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o most_o severe_o do_v they_o punish_v such_o as_o either_o sell_v such_o book_n or_o read_v they_o or_o keep_v they_o without_o licence_n why_o then_o shall_v not_o papist_n confess_v that_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o take_v a_o more_o strict_a course_n than_o hitherto_o we_o have_v do_v with_o all_o their_o book_n and_o pamphlet_n and_o with_o all_o that_o have_v they_o especial_o now_o see_v that_o few_o of_o they_o come_v forth_o but_o they_o be_v fraught_v with_o slander_n against_o the_o state_n lies_z and_o imposture_n against_o religion_n and_o doctrine_n tend_v to_o sedition_n and_o corruption_n of_o manner_n observation_n 6_o we_o may_v further_o observe_v that_o no_o man_n ever_o have_v less_o reason_n to_o talk_v of_o conscience_n than_o rob._n parson_n and_o his_o disciple_n owlyglasse_n and_o their_o damnable_a consort_n devoid_a of_o all_o conscience_n for_o conscience_n be_v ground_v only_o upon_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o inward_a judgement_n of_o every_o man_n of_o his_o own_o action_n according_a to_o the_o knowledge_n which_o he_o have_v of_o god_n law_n and_o his_o word_n and_o this_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n word_n rom._n 1._o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o gentile_n do_v show_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n their_o conscience_n bear_v they_o witness_n and_o their_o thought_n either_o accuse_v they_o or_o excuse_v they_o s._n james_n 4._o james_n he_o also_o show_v we_o that_o we_o have_v one_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v s._n in_o exposit_n proposit_a ex_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n augustine_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 1._o show_v that_o conscience_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o man_n soul_n of_o his_o own_o action_n si_fw-mi cor_fw-la nostrum_fw-la nos_fw-la reprehenderit_fw-la saithe_v he_o rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o john_n 1._o epist_n c._n 3._o maior_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la conscientia_fw-la nostra_fw-la but_o the_o papist_n ground_n their_o conscience_n upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n upon_o the_o vain_a opinion_n of_o every_o lousy_a canonist_n upon_o the_o wicked_a and_o treasonable_a conceit_n of_o parson_n and_o allen_n in_o their_o resolution_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n for_o the_o english_a nation_n upon_o the_o damnable_a commandment_n of_o their_o superior_n break_v their_o neck_n &_o run_v headlong_o into_o hell_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v command_v and_o that_o blind_o &_o wilful_o for_o other_o private_a man_n pleasure_n and_o this_o appear_v first_o by_o martin_n aspilcuetaes_n enchiridion_fw-la of_o case_n of_o conscience_n by_o the_o compendium_n of_o the_o jesuit_n alagona_n and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o casuiste_n which_o as_o the_o adversary_n can_v deny_v be_v ground_v as_o well_o upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o custom_n and_o upon_o the_o law_n tradition_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o opinion_n of_o canonist_n as_o upon_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nay_o there_o be_v far_o more_o case_n that_o concern_v the_o pope_n law_n than_o that_o concern_v god_n law_n second_o lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n c._n 15._o &_o seq_fw-la bellarmine_n teach_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n that_o bind_v in_o conscience_n semper_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o episcopos_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la dioecesibus_fw-la &_o romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la in_o tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la esse_fw-la veros_fw-la principes_fw-la ecclesiasticos_fw-la qui_fw-la possint_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la etiam_fw-la sine_fw-la plebis_fw-la consensu_fw-la vel_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la consilio_fw-la leges_fw-la far_o quae_fw-la in_o conscientia_fw-la obligent_fw-la hereof_o it_o follow_v also_o that_o all_o papist_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o believe_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la concern_v faith_n and_o to_o observe_v his_o rule_n concern_v manner_n and_o that_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o i_o think_v not_o papist_n will_v deny_v it_o three_o allen_n and_o parson_n in_o their_o most_o wicked_a resolution_n teach_v their_o traitorous_a scholar_n first_o to_o wear_v long_a hair_n second_o not_o only_o to_o change_v their_o name_n but_o also_o to_o deny_v their_o name_n three_o to_o deny_v their_o country_n &_o parentage_n resolut_a case_z nation_n anglic._n cap._n 1._o case_z 1._o four_o to_o deny_v her_o majesty_n to_o be_v lawful_a queen_n &_o her_o officer_n to_o have_v power_n over_o mass_n priest_n for_o that_o be_v also_o teach_v in_o the_o resolution_n albeit_o not_o propound_v in_o the_o case_n ibid._n cap._n 3_o case_z 5._o final_o to_o forswear_v themselves_o and_o to_o dissemble_v and_o practice_v all_o manner_n of_o treachery_n they_o also_o show_v how_o they_o may_v eat_v flesh_n on_o fast_a day_n and_o come_v in_o company_n with_o man_n of_o our_o religion_n &_o neglect_v the_o pope_n law_n also_o in_o case_n of_o danger_n in_o sum_n their_o resolution_n tend_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o show_v how_o mass_n priest_n with_o a_o good_a conscience_n well_o wrought_v &_o supple_v by_o robert_n parson_n may_v by_o help_n of_o a_o good_a romish_a conscience_n betray_v their_o country_n to_o the_o spaniard_n and_o cut_v their_o countryman_n throat_n four_o the_o rhemiste_n in_o their_o exposition_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n write_v upon_o the_o 23._o of_o the_o act_n teach_v their_o disciple_n how_o to_o forswear_v themselves_o and_o resolve_v that_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n they_o must_v break_v their_o oath_n be_v these_o fellow_n than_o christian_n trow_v you_o that_o handle_v the_o most_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n do_v by_o their_o wicked_a exposition_n teach_v man_n to_o violate_v their_o oath_n and_o to_o abuse_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n final_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v that_o the_o inferior_a be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o general_a of_o that_o wicked_a race_n of_o jebusiticall_a impostor_n and_o traitor_n to_o do_v any_o act_n or_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o dispute_v of_o the_o matter_n but_o resolute_o to_o execute_v what_o they_o be_v command_v and_o this_o they_o call_v obedientiam_fw-la caecam_fw-la if_o then_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o general_a of_o the_o jesuit_n command_v parson_n or_o garnet_n to_o kill_v the_o queen_n or_o any_o principal_a man_n of_o england_n or_o their_o own_o mother_n by_o this_o doctrine_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v it_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a then_o that_o any_o christian_a state_n can_v suffer_v such_o traitor_n and_o parricide_n or_o their_o adherent_n to_o live_v among_o they_o observation_n 7_o the_o seven_o observation_n shall_v be_v for_o the_o edification_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o romish_a cacolick_n they_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o will_v so_o be_v call_v but_o i_o have_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v in_o a_o gross_a error_n by_o very_o plain_a evidence_n to_o they_o therefore_o i_o say_v that_o if_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v make_v member_n of_o christ_n true_a church_n they_o must_v come_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n and_o forsake_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n and_o drink_v no_o more_o of_o her_o cup_n full_a of_o all_o abomination_n second_o if_o that_o religion_n which_o be_v spring_v up_o of_o late_a time_n and_o long_o after_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n can_v be_v true_a then_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a and_o counterfeit_a three_o if_o papist_n desire_v to_o be_v true_a catholic_n then_o must_v they_o renounce_v the_o particular_a religion_n of_o romanist_n that_o have_v not_o either_o of_o all_o christian_n be_v know_v or_o at_o all_o time_n general_o be_v receive_v four_o if_o no_o heretic_n deserve_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n then_o must_v they_o forsake_v the_o heretical_a opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o their_o proctor_n if_o they_o will_v be_v account_v christian_n and_o true_a beléever_n five_o if_o idolater_n shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n let_v they_o beware_v of_o the_o notorious_a idolatry_n maintain_v by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o popish_a religion_n final_o if_o the_o jesuit_n and_o massepriest_n be_v a_o faction_n adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o foreign_a enemy_n then_o have_v they_o need_v to_o take_v heed_n how_o they_o receive_v they_o aid_v they_o join_v with_o they_o or_o have_v any_o deal_n with_o they_o observation_n 8_o final_o i_o observe_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o lie_n and_o imposture_n and_o can_v stand_v without_o falsification_n fraud_n and_o violence_n i_o have_v already_o verify_v the_o same_o by_o many_o particular_n and_o every_o man_n shall_v hereby_o discern_v that_o i_o have_v say_v truth_n for_o that_o neither_o parson_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o consort_n will_v undertake_v from_o point_n to_o point_n to_o answer_v my_o challenge_n and_o to_o justify_v both_o all_o such_o allegation_n as_o i_o have_v say_v to_o be_v falsify_v and_o also_o all_o such_o narration_n as_o i_o have_v challenge_v to_o be_v lie_v and_o false_a report_n i_o do_v rather_o look_v for_o such_o a_o bald_a ribald_n like_o rail_a libel_n as_o this_o be_v and_o such_o pamphlet_n as_o parson_n use_v to_o set_v forth_o under_o counterfect_a name_n all_o you_o therefore_o of_o the_o romish_a religion_n beware_v of_o the_o abomination_n of_o babylon_n and_o of_o the_o falsehood_n and_o fraud_n of_o that_o whore_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o 7._o hill_n i_o have_v as_o you_o may_v perceive_v touch_v but_o few_o particular_n in_o comparison_n of_o those_o which_o i_o can_v have_v object_v if_o time_n &_o laisure_n will_v have_v serve_v but_o if_o parson_n come_v forth_o again_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o rest_n i_o will_v also_o add_v the_o notorious_a forgery_n lie_v &_o calumniation_n of_o possevin_n gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n professores_fw-la quinti_fw-la evangelij_fw-la andrea_n jurgivit_n vilnensis_n that_o deni_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n cré_v and_o other_o such_o villainous_a companion_n not_o forget_v alan_n copus_n alias_o harpesfield_n nor_o stapleton_n nor_o any_o notorious_a stickler_n of_o that_o wicked_a crew_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n laugh_v and_o enjoy_v their_o ease_n while_o a_o number_n of_o english_a youth_n be_v draw_v into_o danger_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n run_v headlong_o of_o a_o blind_a and_o furious_a zeal_n into_o treason_n and_o seek_v how_o to_o maintain_v the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o to_o teach_v his_o error_n and_o heresy_n god_n for_o his_o mercy_n sake_n if_o it_o be_v his_o holy_a will_v open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v see_v their_o own_o gross_a error_n and_o forsake_v these_o pernicious_a course_n and_o in_o the_o end_n join_v themselves_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o friend_n kinsman_n and_o countryman_n in_o a_o firm_a resolution_n not_o only_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o prince_n country_n and_o nation_n against_o all_o foreign_a enemy_n but_o also_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o true_a religion_n against_o the_o attempt_n and_o assault_n of_o antichrist_n and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o all_o idolater_n and_o heretic_n the_o only_a upholder_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n